Sie sind auf Seite 1von 250

Application for the Award of Degree of Doctor of Philosophy

Thesis Title

Memories are Not Silence: the trauma of witnessing and art making. A
Phenomenological exploration of my lived experience as an artist.

Candidate
Elizabeth Jean Deshon Woodhams, BTh., MA
2004

Thesis submitted in fulfillment of the requirements for the degree of Doctor of


Philosophy with the Creative Industries Research and Application Centre
(CIRAC) at Queensland University of Technology (QUT)
i

TITLE OF THESIS: Memories are Not Silence; the trauma of witnessing and
art making. A phenomenological exploration of my lived experiences as an
artist.

ABSTRACT
This research investigates formative and definitive lived experiences as two narrative
forms - art works and writing. The research seeks to uncover the essential features of
these experiences (dominated as they are by my experiences of AIDS and the after
effects of war) and bring the two narratives together as a reflexive and reflective
dialogue. The 'lens' of my art practice (both written and visual) is predominantly that
of a landscape painter -be it 'landscape of faces' (portraits), landscapes of the human
form (figurative) or the more traditional descriptions of landscape (especially
deserts). Phenomenological research is a particular mode of describing and
understanding the contours of lived experience. By a process of self-reflection and
critical analysis this research explores various understandings of landscape so as to
uncover their structure and meaning and to come to a deeper understanding of how
those elements influence my art making.

KEY WORDS: memories, silence, art, artists, women artists, art making, trauma,
witnessing, phenomenological research, lived experience, writing, HIV/AIDS,
hetrosexual voices, war.
ii

Contents

Title of Thesis i
Abstract i
Key Words i
List of Images vi
Statement of Original Authorship viii
Acknowledgments ix

1. Introduction 1

2. Background to Study 5

3. Theories of Art and Theories of Ethics that Underpin this Study 11


Introduction 11
Art 13
Ethics 16

4. Objectives of the Program of Study and the Relationship to Published


Research in the Same Field 20
Unpacking Some Particular Terms 22
Trauma 23
Landscape and Trauma 25
Trauma and Time 25
Obsession, Trauma and Grace 27
An Exercise in Obsession or Making to Our Heart's Content 28
Trauma in My Experience 30
The After Landscape of Trauma 30
The Responsibility of 'Seeing' 32
Bushfires, War and Phenomenological Research 34
Relation to Other Published Work 35

5. Research Methods and Design of the Study 43


Introduction 43
iii

Phenomenology as the Most Appropriate Research 'Method' for this


Research 47
Research Within One's Own Practice 47
The Conduct of Phenomenological Research 50
Essential Elements of Phenomenological Research and their
Relationship to Art Making 52
Phenomenology and Me 54
The Design of the Research Project 55

6. Review of Related Literature 58


Introduction 58
Artists and Lived Experience 58
Artists, Plagues, Wars and Epidemics 61
Artists and War 65
Art and Descendants 68
War Artists 71
Artists and the Holocaust 73
Artists and AIDS 78
Artists and the Experience of Art Making 81
Phenomenological research 82
Artists, Aesthetics and Ethics 82
Artists and Autobiography 85

7. Conduct of the Study 88


Zones of Desire - or Themes in Phenomenological Research 88
'Themes' and 'Essences' 88
'Themes' and the Birthplace of Art 91
'Themes' 92
Conduct of the Study or the Interweaving of 'Texts' 93
The Language of the Books 94
Relationship to Works Produced 96
Analysis of Themes 99
Art works. Book 1 of 12. 100
iv

7a. 'Themes' of Compassion/Empathy, Sameness/Difference and


Witnessing 102
Introduction 102
Compassion/Empathy Sameness/Difference 103
Sameness/Difference 107

7b. 'Themes' of Blackness, Despair and Helplessness 112

7c. 'Theme' of Contemplation and Solitude 118

Introduction 118
The Trinity 120
Insights 121
Solitude 122

7d. 'Theme' of A Sense of Place 126

Introduction 126
Memorials and Art 126
The Place of Cemeteries 129
Funerals 130
Mourning and Art 131

7e. The 'Theme' of Intimacy, Art Making and Trauma 134


Trust, Surprise, Trauma and Betrayal 135

8. Exhibition Works 137


Introduction 137
Art Works and Phenomenological Description 138
Reflection on Some Particular Works - the Drought Paintings 142
Ceramic Bowls 144

9. Conclusion 146
How A Dying Baby Became A Waterfall 146

10. Appendices 154


v

Appendix 1 Books 1- 12 with Footnotes 154


Appendix 2 Letters to Keith (After his Funeral, Letter from The Gulf,
Letter After Ethiopia and Eritrea) 178
Appendix 3 What was it like to sit beside a dying man? 189
Appendix 4 Selected Exhibitions 194
Appendix 5 Details of Images 196
Appendix 6 Selected Papers, Conferences and Publications 198

11. Bibliography 200


vi

List of Images
Figure No. Facing Page No.

1. The Quilt, 2002 5

2. Ricko, Portrait of a Vietnam Veteran, 1999 6

3. I didn't expect it to be like this,1999 7

4. A Man With AIDS 11, 2000 8

5. My Father's Dreams, 1999 9

6. The Roots and Threads of Meaning, 2003 12

7. Rabbit Trap, 2002 20

8. Figures in Shellac, 2003 21

9. PTSD - So Bloody What? 2002 23

10. Robed Women and Drought, 2002 34

11. Red Blotches, 2002 56

12. Blue Gate, 2002 57

13. Cream Robed Woman, 2003 93

14. So Still, and Silent, and Enduring, 2003 94

15. Sienna Hills of Home, 2002 95

16. Glued writing, 2003 96

17. Ma and the Nurse, Book 1, 2003 98

18. Bundles of Rags, 2003 99

19. Woven Landscape, 2003 102

20. How a Dying Baby Became a Waterfall, Book 10, 2003 111

21. If I start Crying Now, 1999 113

22. Skeletal Man, 2002 114

23. Grief Viewing Grief, 2002 117

24. Duo Becomes the Trinity, 2002 120


vii

25. No Grave/Crosses, 2002 126

26. Beside the Bed, 2002 141

27. Drought Sheep 4, 2002 143

28. I've Always Hated Maggots, 2002 148

29. Dad's Leg and Spoon, 2002 150

30. Dad's Leg/ Keith's Sore 11, 2002 152


viii

Statement of Original Authorship

The work contained in this document has not been previously submitted for a degree
or diploma at any other higher education institution. To the best of my knowledge
and belief the document contains no material previously published or written by
another person except where due reference is made.

Signed: …………………………………………………..

Date: ……………………………………………………..
ix

Acknowledgements

The list of those to whom I owe debts of gratitude would be like the Litany of Saints
from boarding school when, after the name of each saint, we would respond 'We
give thanks' or 'Pray for us'. I do both for my family, friends and colleagues who
have enabled me to embark upon this program of study. I owe particular gratitude to
those (apart from my sisters and brothers) who have provided a roof over the head of
the student, her books, computer and paints during the conduct of this research -
Sybil and John O'Keeffe and Russell and Susan Richards. My thanks are grossly
inadequate for the gifts they have all bestowed on me.

'Sometimes we hear and see things and we feel as though our hearts will break and
we don't know why'. Some of my experiences of my mother and my father, the
wounded soldiers, the wards full of those dying of AIDS - and dying babies - have
all, at various times, made me feel as though my heart would break. The ways in
which our heart thinks itself capable of breaking may be a mystery but the causes of
the suffering to which our heart 'listens' are not so mysterious - they are simply the
result of our not understanding and not caring in the 'right' ways. Many have said
that 'art cannot change the world' - but neither can science, psychology or economics
unless they are employed by creative caring human beings who use whatever gifts
they may have to assuage the suffering of others. I here acknowledge my debt to
those artists who so clearly 'hear' the 'voices of silent suffering' and by so doing give
succor and encouragement to those of us who might be '50 years' behind.

It is commonplace in pages such as this to acknowledge the support, assistance and


guidance of one's supervisors. My supervision, by Associate Professor David
Hawke, Ms. Jill Barker and Mr. Donal Fitzpatrick has never been commonplace and
has matched - even surpassed - the level of support offered by the University to its
Post Graduate students which I have experienced as outstanding. It has taken me
some time to allow myself to stop and to ‘rise to the occasion’ of this program of
research. I am enormously grateful to my supervisors that, when I did stop, my study
was welcomed, supported and guided with humour, great patience and wisdom.
1

1. INTRODUCTION

As will be argued in this study, art arises from conflict, a disjunction between what
we do and do not understand. 'Conflict' as it is used in this study does not always
allude to negative experiences because we can be as puzzled by experiences we
describe as 'beautiful' as we can be by those we describe as 'awful' and 'terrible'.
That conflict and disjunction can give rise to 'trauma' that can be experienced as
along a continuum from moderate to severe. In the context of this study, art could be
described as the negotiation - a search for an understanding of the meaning - of that
conflict. This search for understanding and meaning is the bedrock focus of a
program of study.

Any study has three essential components. First, to identify the puzzle or problem
that one seeks to understand. Second, how one solves those problems and who and
what assisted in the task of resolution, and third, what result or conclusion emerged
from the study. To return to the first component - the experiences I needed to
understand concerned my working with people with AIDS and my father as an ex-
POW. More particularly, it could be said that I needed to understand the after effects
of AIDS and war, and, even more specifically, I needed to understand the silence that
surrounds some memories, some experiences and the suffering that is often implicit
in being silenced - not being able to speak and not being heard - and how those
experiences have influenced my art practice. The lived experiences I sought to
understand are described in Chapter 2, Background to the Study. Some further
background is contained in Chapter 3 where some particular understandings of the
notions of 'art' and 'ethics' as used in the study are discussed. As 'trauma' and
'landscape' are central elements of the thesis topic, those are discussed in some detail
in Chapter 4, the Objectives of the Study and the Relationship to Published Research
in the Same Field.

Second, the choice of methodology that I employed to unravel the puzzles is


discussed in Chapter 5, Research Methods and Design of the Study. I chose
phenomenology because its philosophical nature is particularly suited to a study of
the lived experience of a visual art practice and it was the only way in which I could
2

research my practice from within. The processes of phenomenological research so


closely resemble those of art making that it made this way of conducting the study a
perfect fit for me - and for me at this particular time. The objectives of a
phenomenological study can appear quite commonplace and insignificant - to gain a
deeper understanding and awareness of the meaning and significance of a
phenomenon as it reveals itself in our ordinary lived experiences. Yet, it is only
when we begin to comprehend the 'cost' of a lack of understanding and awareness
that the full import and radical nature of a phenomenological approach is also
revealed. As will be detailed throughout the study and, in particular, in the
discussion of trauma, it is precisely the lack of understanding the meaning and
significance of some of our lived experiences that can lead to so much suffering,
dislocation and even death. Throughout this study I use the term 'healing' to denote a
return to 'flourishing' rather just 'existing'. I do not use it to mean leading to a 'cure'
because I do not believe there is a 'cure' for trauma. Other terms used in the study,
for example the notion of `beauty`, are to be understood both existentially and
aesthetically.

The work of those who have assisted this study - the philosophers, artists, writers,
and scientists - are discussed in Chapter 6, Review of Related Literature. This
Chapter also, inevitably, identifies critical gaps in the literature concerning many of
the questions that arose during the course of the study - the experience of
descendants of survivors of war, the experiences of war artists after their service and
the paucity of literature concerning artists researching their own practice - are just a
few of the missing pieces. In a phenomenological study the reflection, the 'following
of threads' and the weaving of found wisdom (or otherwise) of a review of relevant
literature is considered a critical part of 'the doing' of the research.

How a phenomenological study (and thus this one) is conducted is discussed in


Chapter 7. A phenomenological study is conducted by a close description of our
lived experiences - we write them and re-write them (and paint and re - paint them)
until, after reflection and critical analysis, we discern the meaning of that particular
experience and we can rest in a 'contentment of understanding'. From those written
and painted descriptions of lived experiences certain 'themes' are discerned (themes
3

of enduring, patience, blackness, contemplation for example) which, in


phenomenology, are conceived of as active rather than passive. They are both our
ardent desire to understand a phenomenon and the vehicle by which we come to an
understanding of it. Themes assist in illuminating the essential elements or essence
of a particular phenomenon - in my study the phenomenon of creating for me as a
visual artist. Chapters 7a - 7e contain a more detailed analysis of some of the themes
that have emerged during the course of the study - 'contemplation', 'blackness', and
'intimacy' for example.

This program of research is a weaving together of three different languages and texts
in a reflexive and reflective dialogue. Throughout this study I have often used 'text'
and 'language' interchangeably. However, one text or language is that of the written
descriptions of certain lived experiences. Some of these descriptions are woven
through the analysis of particular themes in Chapter 7a - 7e. When only extracts of
the descriptions are included in the main part of the thesis, the full text is contained
in Appendix 1 and Appendix 3. Second, the paintings, drawings and monoprints
completed during the course of the study I also consider 'texts'. Some are presented
in a traditional format - on canvas and paper - and others are interleaved with the
written phenomenological descriptions and are contained in a series of twelve hand
made Books. A transcription of the Book texts are to be found in Appendix 1 as well
a woven throughout the thesis as indicated above. The third text is this more formal
written thesis interleaved with some of the most pertinent images. All the written
texts are contained within this bound volume whilst the paintings and drawings will
be unpacked from a major piece, a desk, and shown as a final exhibition. Some
reflections on the exhibition works are contained in Chapter 8.

The third element of the study, the conclusion is found in Chapter 9 with some
reflections on directions for further research.

There are several particular elements of a phenomenological study that make it


different from other qualitative research methodologies. Many of the terms used in
phenomenology ought technically be encased in parenthesis because their use does
not conform to a conventional one. As phenomenology is concerned with questions
4

of meaning - of being and becoming - a process which is forever unfolding until our
death - a phenomenological study does not have 'results' and 'conclusions' as
normally understood in an academic study. Furthermore, there is no fixed form of a
phenomenon - each experience we have of it can deepen our appreciation of its
complexity and the many threads it weaves throughout our lived experiences. It is
because phenomenology is concerned with discerning the meaning of our
experiences (which are always bigger than our language) that it is, perhaps, more
useful to regard many of the terms of a phenomenological study as poetic and
metaphorical rather than literal.

This research, then, is not a study of phenomenology and nor is it concerned with a
detailed exploration of theories of beauty or of art nor with theories of evil nor with
schools of psychology. Phenomenology is characterized by a particular equality.
Descriptions of lived experience (written and painted) share the same level as a
variety of theories and other writings - all are employed for the sole reason that they
assist me to 'make sense' of my experiences as an artist which is the singular purpose
of the study. Consequently, this research does not elaborate extensively on any
single aspect of theories or contexts of art that might pertain to any particular period.
5

2. BACKGROUND TO STUDY

This phenomenological study describes formative lived experiences in two narrative


forms – painting and text. The research will uncover the essential features of these
experiences and bring the two types of narratives together in the form of a reflexive
and reflective dialogue so that the dominant themes that have influenced my work
are revealed.

The context of the research is connected to my experience as a professional visual


artist. Sometimes I have worked as an artist in residence – in a Day Care Centre for
People Living with AIDS, in the Sacred Heart Hospice, Darlinghurst, as National
Convenor of the Australian AIDS Memorial Quilt Project, in an Acute Psychiatry
Unit at Toowoomba Base Hospital, in a Dementia Unit and Aged Care facility in
Victoria and with various community groups. However, the direction my life and
work took in the late 1980’s into the lives of people living with AIDS was intimately
related to my experience, as a Catholic woman, of being virtually excommunicated
whilst living in a small country town in far western New South Wales. During my
time in Balranald (as an 'ex-communicated' member of the Parish Council) I was the
recipient of what I termed 'behind the bushes compassion'. I was told 'I was quite a
good person' and the way divorced people were treated within the Church was 'not
right'. That compassion, however, never publicly challenged traditional thought and
nor was the traditional teaching brought into dialogue with practical cases where, on
the face of it, the traditional teaching was quite simply wrong. However, the idea of
having a rope cast around my neck and being thrown into the sea (a Biblical response
to giving scandal) was sufficiently threatening for me to realize that if I were to
challenge orthodox ideas my own should be thoroughly tested. These various
experiences of being considered 'an outsider' 'an evil presence' directly led me to
studying for my theology degree – to see if my ideas of a compassionate God held up
to philosophical and theological questioning. They, in turn, also led to volunteering
to work with people with AIDS. In Australia at that time it was the homosexual
community that was being devastated by AIDS - and in some traditional Church
teaching gays and the divorced were lumped together in the need for a 'pastoral'
solution to their existence. At that time (and still now by some) gay people were
6

considered to be beyond the pale, outsiders, their illness a consequence of an evil


lifestyle, excommunicated by many in their Churches, their families and by many
sections of the general community.

That time in Sydney was one of the best and one of the worst times of my life.
Certainly it was a definitive time and has determined the direction of my life and
work ever since. In the later section dealing with Trauma I will further discuss the
impact of this time. For now suffice to say that I now have two selves - a 'before
AIDS' self and an 'after AIDS' self. At that time HIV/AIDS was not a 'manageable
disease like diabetes'. My clients, my friends, my colleagues, my acquaintances died
one after another and frequently it seemed as though I was surrounded by unrelenting
death and grief. Which I was. At the same time I met some extraordinary 'ordinary'
people - several of whom have become enduring 'teachers' of mine.

Then, when one too many had died, I left Sydney and came home to the country and
set up a studio in my brother’s old shearers' huts. I live in a fairly traditional rural
area where most grow wool. I learnt very quickly on my return that some topics were
taboo. I could not talk about AIDS, nor about 'gays', nor about death and nor about
grief. I could not talk about how my stomach heaved for years whenever I saw a
Band-Aid or blood.

I am predominantly a landscape painter. I love remote and sparse landscapes where I


feel my soul can breathe. A few years ago, however, I did one of my first portraits –
of a Vietnam Veteran who suffered from Post-Traumatic Stress Syndrome.1 His
view, that this was a 'normal' response to the experience of war, may be true but it
did not help their wives, children and friends cope with the silences, the withdrawals,
and the 'missing parts'.

Even though one of my brothers had been called up for Vietnam I had never read
anything about that war. I had read much of prisoner’s experiences of the Second

1
'Ricko' (1998) first exhibited in 'As a Lizard Drinks', Sydney 1998, then as part of 'Down the Track -
the After Effects of War', Veterans Affairs Conference, Powerhouse Museum, Sydney 1999, then
7

World War. My father was a Scot. He came to Australia as a jackeroo when he was
18 and returned 'home' only twice in the next 60 years. He was a prisoner of war on
the Burma Railway during that war. My mother lost a brother in New Guinea. Other
members of her family returned 'never quite the same'. It was always my father’s
experiences, however, that dominated my early childhood and adolescence. His
nightmares were such a constant presence that they became 'normal'. He used to talk
about the funny – and noble – experiences of the war. But he never spoke about the
awful. And nor did we ask.

The painting of the Vietnam Veteran triggered a massive upheaval in myself. I read,
obsessively, anything I could get my hands on about Vietnam. Finally I read Samuel
Hynes The Soldiers' Tale. Bearing Witness to Modern War' - an overview of soldiers'
narratives from World War 1, 11 and Vietnam (1997). What arrested me was the
continuity of the major themes disclosed in that work - 'I didn’t expect it to be like
this' 'Jesus will it ever end' 'It was the best time of my life'. They were themes (apart
from the terror of being shot at) that could have come from my narratives of living in
that time of AIDS2. I bought a book from the Auckland Museum detailing some of
the works by New Zealand artists on the impact of wars on their country3. Coalface
paintings and paintings reflecting down the track. I went to the Australian War
Museum in Canberra and discovered there were very few paintings dealing with the
after effects of war. It was as though, for the most part, the various wars stopped in
1918, 1945, and 1975 and all went back to normal. Shortly after that I completed a
series of works called 'Down the Track – the after effects of war and AIDS'. One of
its first showings was at Stanthorpe Regional Art Gallery in conjunction with an
exhibition of memorabilia by the local Vietnam Veteran’s Association. At one time I
looked around the Gallery. The women were looking at the drawings, reading the
texts, many sobbing, and the men appeared to be looking at the guns and bullets

Stanthorpe Regional Gallery 2000. The Portrait is now part of Viet Nam Voices a National Travelling
Exhibition curated by Casula Powerhouse Museum, Sydney 2001 - 2005.
2
Some of these 'themes' were included in works exhibited in Down the Track - the After Effects of
War and AIDS whose exhibition details are detailed above.
3
Martin, T., & Phillips, W.A (1990). New Zealand Images of War. Palmerston North: The Manawatu
Art Gallery.
8

I had left Sydney, and although I 'resisted' and tried to repress many of the memories
of that time, I came to realize that I had not 'left' AIDS. Then, for a number of years
I wanted to 'do something' as a visual artist concerning people living with AIDS. In
Australia it was as though AIDS had disappeared. But I did not know what I wanted
to do. Then I saw an article in the Weekend Australian about AIDS in Ethiopia4 – a
ward full of men dying of AIDS in a hospital in Addis Ababa and beneath it a
photograph of grave diggers digging graves for the dead. To be honest I think it was
the gravediggers that captured my imagination as much as the ward full of dying
men. Part of the unresolved dilemma of my time in Sydney was that many of my
friends had no graves. No place that marked their presence and their passing. Not
like the War Memorial with its Roll of Honour Wall – white granite, brass names and
red poppies - and not like the endless acres of gravestones in France and Egypt
where, most times, bones are buried as the dead. At that time, in Sydney, I scattered
ashes in the Harbour, dug them into gardens. It was what people wanted and it
seemed appropriate at the time. Another challenge to the way it always was. But
over time I worried about the missing sense of place and the importance of graves
and gravestones.

So I travelled to Ethiopia and Eritrea because AIDS knows no frontiers and because
they had so recently been at war I could not go to one without going to the other. I
did not expect the trip to be easy and it wasn’t. Parts of it, however, were incredibly
beautiful. Most of the time it was tough. I had seen many adults die before but I had
not seen babies die. I did not expect it to be tougher when I got home than it was
when I was away. I took a studio and shut myself away to paint out the images that
haunted my mind. A blanket of blackness fell over me for months and when it was
over it seemed such an inconsequential contribution to trying to make a difference. I
called the exhibition 'suffering knows no geography'.'5

Recently I read 'the silence – how tragedy shapes talk' by Ruth Wajinryb, published
2001. Most of her interviewees were adult children of Holocaust survivors. Many

4
Tatlow, D. (2000, May 6). Ethiopia digging its own grave. The Weekend Australian, p.18.
5
Exhibited Warwick Regional Art Gallery 2001 and Perc Tucker Regional Gallery, Townsville and
Townsville Art Society Gallery, Townsville also in 2001.
9

had children of their own. Most had grown up like I had with great pages missing
from the family history. 'The thing' (be it the Holocaust or being a POW in Burma)
permeated every part of their lives but was never mentioned – except in passing or in
extenuation. One of the interviewees had decided to adopt children from overseas.
Not to have children of her own – so that 'the genes of grief' (and guilt, I think)
would stop with her generation.

On my return from Ethiopia I gave a Seminar at the Centre for the Study of Ethics at
Queensland University of Technology, Carseldine, on some of the ethical questions
that had arisen for me during my travels and in the development and exhibition of the
works. During the course of the Seminar a comment was made that, in general,
ethical discourse had privileged the written word and what ought to happen is that
the art works and the stories be considered an indivisible part of an ethical
endeavour6. VanManen (1990,p.5) has written that research can be a 'caring act: we
want to know that which is most essential to being. To care is to serve and to share
our being with the one we love'. To care and to serve is why this research takes the
form that it does. An analysis of finished works does not provide an understanding
of the full ramifications of an art practice. To care responsibly is to be aware of the
presence of grief and suffering. And so much of that, as I have already mentioned, is
hidden.

My work dealing with the effects of war and AIDS is, I believe, part of what artists
are called upon to do – to reflect upon the urgent social issues of their time. This
study has already uncovered widespread, long-term grief and suffering (from the
effects of war and AIDS) that is still largely hidden and unacknowledged. As one of
my fellow students remarked only recently my parent's generation was 'doubly
traumatized' - by their experience of the First World War followed closely by the
Second World War. (Bourke 2002,pers.comm.) It does matter that the effects of
these experiences are encountered as 'silence' because unless they are 'spoken' we do
not know what happened to our parents and our friends as a result of their war
service. It is then difficult to understand the connections between the traumas they

6
I am indebted to Dr. Peter Isaacs for this comment.
10

experienced and the impact those had on their relationships, communities and work
down the track. To have a just and caring society it is necessary to have some
appreciation of the suffering experienced by its members and their particular needs.
Increasingly, the health, wealth and security of all societies is intimately connected
with matters of justice and care - and most acutely with respect to the issue of
HIV/AIDS (Beyrer 1998; Dupont 2001; Yunus 1998). As with our ANZAC
heritage, many of the stories that came out of the early responses to the AIDS
epidemic were of the heroic type (and rightly so in many cases) but there is a dark
vulnerability to the heroic as well - the pain, hurt and suffering that continues on well
past the parades. It is an incomplete rendition of history if those stories are not
painted and told as well.
11

3. THEORIES OF ART AND THEORIES OF ETHICS THAT UNDERPIN


THIS STUDY

Introduction

My understanding of my art practice has obviously changed over the years and more
dramatically since I became 'living with AIDS'. The term 'living with AIDS' is used
equally to describe those who are HIV Positive or who may have AIDS (neither of
which is me) and those whose lives have been affected by AIDS (which does include
me). In Australia, where AIDS has largely affected the gay community, there are
some subtle, and not so subtle, distinctions within these two categories that I will
address later in the Study. One of the distinctions that does immediately affect me is
that, here in Australia, exhibitions concerning AIDS are usually curated as a 'gay
response' and thus my work is not included. Suffice for this time is an explanation of
a term I commonly use in this study - 'living with AIDS'.

Andréa R. Vaucher in her study Muses from Chaos and Ash, AIDS, Artists and Art
(1993) has identified changes in the way some artists have viewed their practice after
their experience of AIDS (most of the artists of Vaucher's study are either HIV
Positive or have AIDS and many are gay). For the most part, Vaucher says, these
artists have identified that they are less concerned with aesthetic considerations, for
example, than with what they need to say. The function of art to communicate is
more important than a perfection of form - although, it must be said, form
communicates as well. Cyril Collard, a novelist/filmmaker, could well be talking
about phenomenology when he says:

You start to question the efficacy of the work of art, maybe there is less
emphasis on the aesthetic. I'm more centered on the core of the work, on the
significance of it, the authenticity of it, much more than the formal, aesthetic
pursuit. For me, the importance is to show the essence of things. The form,
the packaging, is superfluous, unnecessary (ibid.p.178)
12

I, too, have noticed a change in how I perceive my art practice since AIDS. Before,
as an impressionist, somewhat traditional landscape painter, I was obsessed with not
only painting in situ, but in getting the tones of colour that I saw in the landscape
'absolutely right'. And I still do have some of these obsessions. More, however,
have I become aware that I use my art as an integral part of how I 'make sense' of my
various experiences - particularly as they relate to the after effects of AIDS and the
aftermath of war.

With respect to war artists there is so very little information about how they lived
after their service, a point I will explore more fully in the Chapter 'Review of Related
Literature'.

Trauma, as will be more comprehensively outlined later in the Study, can threaten
the integrity of our being - our flourishing. It metaphorically 'throws us off our
perch' of normal existing and we are left in the aftermath of traumatic experiences
with the feeling that, not only do we have no words to describe what has happened to
us, but no 'tools' with which to repair our wounded selves. (The feelings of
'helplessness', 'despair', 'blackness' 'hopelessness' and so on engendered in ourselves
during those times I will explore in more detail in the Analysis of Themes). Art, in
its various disguises, has always been central to my life. After AIDS it is not only
central but also critical to the recovery and maintenance of a sense of flourishing. I
hesitate to use words such as 'recovery' as they can imply that a 'recovered' state is
the end of all suffering - and the end of a need for art. That, certainly, is not true in
my case - nor, I think for most. My aversion to a modern usage of the term 'closure'
stems from the same place. The fact is that for some (most) there is no closure - no
end to suffering because we cannot reverse loss and death. Caputo (2003,p.176)
would even assert that we ought resist most strongly the notion of closure - 'the last
thing I want is closure, bringing the question of who we are to a close, instead of
keeping it endlessly open, which allows for an endless reinvention of ourselves'.
What seems to be demanded to enable a life of flourishing is that we have to learn
some particular skills of living with and within our traumatic experiences -
acknowledging that, in time, there may be more periods of peace and happiness but
even those times will not eradicate all suffering. During the course of this study I
13

completed a series of books - text interwoven with paintings and drawings. In Book
I wrote of a session of making where I felt the need to 'paper over the cracks' - until it
dawned on me that the 'cracks' can never really be papered over. Furthermore, a
caring society is one that will accept and listen to the voice of the cracks. Such a
society may be a utopian dream but what has characterized the artists of Vaucher's
study (and myself) is that they no longer attempt to paper over the cracks.

This study, as a phenomenological exploration of my lived experience as a visual


artist, is not directly concerned to argue the relative merits of various theories of art
nor of ethics. In the last analysis, theories of any description (be they theories of art,
psychology, psychoanalysis or spirituality) are useful only to the extent that they
assist us to understand our own experiences and those we have witnessed of others.
They help us to make sense of our experiences. I have come to realize that theories
of art and ethics (like a religious belief) are tested in the 'ordinariness' of extreme
situations. We may discern traces of their usefulness during times of minimum stress
but it is whether they can hold up to (and help us to understand) the demanding
questions of the extreme times that is perhaps the most important thing. A brief
outline of the theories I have found most useful in my work (understood very broadly
as my life) is here included as they provide a further background text.

Art

Ellen Dissanayake, in her several works, most notably, What is Art For? (1988),
describes a bio-evolutionary theory of art that I have found stands up well to the
questioning I have thrown at it, particularly during my residencies in health care
institutions and in working with people living with AIDS. Put simply, Dissanayake's
theory posits that, in primitive societies (the primitive function of art), art making
arose to enable groups within a society to have a greater chance of survival (and, as
importantly, flourishing) in the face of danger and uncertainty. Art making with its
rituals, repetition, rhythm, pattern making, playing and so on is innately pleasurable
and engrossing. It makes us feel powerful, in control and pleasured in the face of the
dread and fear occasioned by uncertainties - and it is because of those feelings which
are engendered in us that we have a greater chance of survival and flourishing - not
14

necessarily the art work that is produced. The artwork (and this is my pondering)
may serve other different functions - as a 'mirror' 'teacher' (just as mine are for me)
but, more importantly, perhaps, as a well of memories that remind us that it is
possible to 'live' differently. At one health care institution where I served an
enjoyable and flourishing art program was destroyed by a new director/psychiatrist
who believed 'cricket and computers' were more valuable to the patients than art. I
was asked (after the event) could anything be done? 'Not in the immediate future' I
thought. What cannot be destroyed, however, are the memories that people have of
good, valuable, enriching and pleasurable experiences. These memories not only
provide 'a model' against which future programs might be measured but they will
often fuel a desire to recreate that which has been lost. This well of memories is akin
to Agnes Martin's (Von Dieter Schwarz Ed.1991, pp.68 -69) 'moments of perfection'
which she has as the impetus for art making:

These moments in which we feel the joy in living. To some, these moments
are very clear and to others a vagueness that can only be described as below
the level of consciousness. Whether conscious or unconscious they do their
work and they are the incentive to life. A stockpile of these moments gives
us an awareness of perfection in our minds and this awareness of perfection
in our minds makes all the difference to what we do. At such times we are
suddenly very happy and we wonder why life ever seemed troublesome
…Such moments…are called sensibility or awareness of perfection in the
mind….The function of the art work is the stimulation of sensibilities, the
renewal of memories of perfection.

'Moments of perfection' - what does that mean? I am not a Quaker but I have
wholeheartedly embraced the maxim of Amish quilt makers - where they always
leave a small patch 'less than perfect' to remind themselves that 'perfection belongs
only to God'. When I reflect on those times when I have felt 'happy' or 'at peace' they
are times when I have felt an overwhelming 'fullness' that is replete of beauty - even
when the 'beauty' is 'ugly'. Martin's theories of art have, however, been very helpful
in understanding more fully the complexities of 'themes' such as 'helplessness',
'despair', 'desperation', and 'blackness' - elements of the notion of creating that will
15

reveal themselves in Book 1 (Appendix 1) and to which I will later return. Her
understanding of these dread (and commonly felt) emotions is that they are not only
inevitable but they are the 'presence' of an awareness of 'absence' - the absence of
perfection. Positively understood, inevitability ought to mean that energy is not
wasted wishing their eradication. It is a somewhat different telling of an ancient
wisdom - that before periods of personal growth or some breakthrough into
enlightenment and freedom - there are times of massive discomfort, dislocation and
despair (Crosby n.d.). However much I welcome the light that Martin's discussion
throws on these elements of 'creating' I do not find her explanation of art as far-
reaching, full and persuasive as the bio-evolutionary schemata put forward by
Dissanayake.

One of the difficulties of Dissanayake's theory is the presence of 'others' - the


members of the group or community. In primitive societies where art making was
more communal than it is now, the pleasure of art making is easier to discern because
we derive more pleasure from moving in rhythm with others than we normally do
alone. In Western cultures such as Australia the conception of artists as solitary,
particularly gifted individuals creating in isolation apart from others is deeply
imbedded. For myself (and many other artists Leslie 2003; Wolseley 2002) the need
for solitude is critical to my flourishing and art practice. There might not be such an
either/or division if solitude is thought of as instrumental - frequently necessary - not
always so. As Riley (1998) has pointed out, even reclusive artists need or desire
their work to be exhibited and to communicate with others. Others, John Brack, for
example (Hawley 1993,p.117) go so far as to suggest that a work is not finished until
it is exhibited. I shall deal with the role and function of exhibitions in a later Chapter
dealing with the 'Theme' of Intimacy.

I was initially hampered in my reflection on theories of art because I was looking for
a theory that would explain a necessity for art that would apply to all. This is
somewhat akin to the 'joke about the economist' quoted by Imre Salusinszky 'who
conceded that an idea worked in practice but was unwilling to accept it until satisfied
it also worked in theory' (The Australian, 27 October, 2003, p.12) I had seen 'art
working in practice' in people who did not call themselves artists and who had not
16

(for the most part) picked up a paintbrush since kindergarten. It did not make sense
to me, if, as I believe, art is an essential human characteristic, that it was only
evidenced in those of us who call ourselves 'artists'. Or ethical reasoning only in
those who call themselves `ethicists'. What had complicated my thinking was a
presumption that art should be 'used' all the time not just in those times of extreme
need. And perhaps it should. Drama-therapist Sue Jennings (Jennings Ed.1992, p.1)
would assert that 'if there was more drama in peoples' lives there would not be the
same need for drama-therapists'. However fascinating the question of art and art
therapy might be it does not form a significant part of this study, except in so far as I
challenge some of the 'therapy' understandings of the notion of 'trauma' as set out in
Chapter 4. Even in an individualistic modern Western culture like Australia I believe
that Dissanayake's 'primitive' function of art still holds true - and still is capable of
explaining its attraction, enduring necessity and its healing validity. It is in those
times when we are confronted by 'things we do not understand', when we feel as
though we could 'break', and our flourishing is under threat, that art making comes
into its own in some form or another.

Ethics

If any study is to be considered as part of an ethical endeavour then it is necessary to


pose the question 'What is ethics? And how does ethics relate to phenomenology?'
There is no fixed form of phenomenology any more than there is a fixed form of a
phenomena (van Manen 1990;Scott 2003). They are always shifting and changing as,
indeed, the circumstances of our lives shift and change. To complicate matters still
further there is not a prescribed 'way' or 'method' of doing phenomenology - in the
sense of set of rules that one must follow. Not only must our understanding of a
phenomena be gained from the conduct of the study (from within 'the doing') but the
emerging understandings can send us in directions not even dreamt of at the
beginning - and to 'results' (of which phenomenology has none) that are provisional
and partial at best. There is always something more that we can come to understand
about any particular phenomenon (Merleau-Ponty [in Johnson Ed.] 1993;van
Manen1996; Levinas [in Hand Ed.]1992). However, as the same conditions apply to
17

art making, it is one of the reasons that phenomenology is such an appropriate


research method for an art practice.

In both art making and ethical reasoning, however, our own experience of constantly
making a whole range of decisions indicates that we employ some standard to our
decision making - even though it is difficult (and sometimes impossible) to fully
articulate what those standards might be. What those standards might be - for both art
and ethics - are, I believe to be found in a very commonplace expression 'making
sense' (Kuspit 1996;van Manen 1990; Caputo 2003). Caputo's theory of ethical
reasoning as Against Principles: a Sketch of an Ethics without Ethics (2003) asserts
that there are no hard and fast rules or principles that we can apply to all our ethical
dilemmas. In each case one has to work out the best thing to do at that time, that is,
we have to make it up as we go along. It is, however, precisely in those conditions of
unknowing - where there are no rules to guide us nor any guarantees against failure -
that we are, or ought to be, at our best (ibid.p.175). This we can check by reflecting
on our best work which seems to emerge when we did not know where it came from
nor how it ended up as it did. Caputo's reasoning ends up with the recognition that,
essentially, the only thing we have to rely on is our own sense of 'responsibility' and
'integrity'. Which is where art (and phenomenology) begins and ends as well.

More particularly referring to art, Donald Kuspit (1996, p.3) suggests that in a post-
modern world the values by which we judge something to be 'good' no longer exist
or are hazy and difficult to 'prove':

Since there is no deep reason to choose among different kinds of art, one
becomes an indiscriminate consumer, while unconsciously remaining
uncommitted and aesthetic. All one trusts is a strong critical stomach, one's
gift for gut assimilation. The critic may try to be fastidious and precise in his
or her preferences, but the more he or she does, the more unexpectedly
important what they exclude seems to become. One is always looking over
one's shoulder at what seems to be beside the critical point, even though one
no longer knows exactly what it is.
18

In this situation, in which every kind of art has been assimilated into the
mainstream and seems 'relevant', only the idiosyncratic artist appears to make
sense - indeed, the only kind of sense that can be made; personal sense

While this emphasis on 'personal sense' is directly in line with an ethics without
principles (and phenomenology), it also obscures the fact that the ethical notions of
'goodness' and 'rightness' cannot be proven because the results of our reasoning
cannot be predicted in advance. Their particular colours have to be discerned anew
in each individual circumstance - and the appellation 'good' or 'right' can only come
after the event and upon reflection.

If, in the final analysis ethics (and art) is essentially concerned with responsibility -
to what is it responsible? Again, in ethics, as in art, it comes down to integrity - and
grace - those 'helping hands' of insight which we can no more command than
demand. We then have to query 'What is integrity?' It is the one of the themes that
has emerged during this study which throws light on what it means to be human -
and what it means to create. The notions of 'responsibility' and 'integrity' relate to our
Being, and to our becoming; to how we rise to the occasions that life demands of us
(May 1994) and which occasions are always multi-facetted - individual,
interdependent and interrelated; and to the choices of modes of being that best allow
us to do what we need to do. I have chosen art because it gives me the best tools to
make sense of how I respond to what life asks of me. Some of the qualities
demanded of a phenomenologist - the ability to remain open to insights, flexible,
rigorous in thought and so on are the same as those demanded by the notion of
integrity. Integrity also demands that we resist the desire to make insights absolute,
forever definitive and universal. That does not mean that we cannot hold strong
opinions as to their value and to their pervasiveness but to also recognize that they
provide no guarantee of success in dealing with other occasions. Nor does integrity
guarantee that our work will have any particular desired response - although I would
argue that what viewers respond to in an artwork is precisely this quality. In the end,
as the inscription 'He did his best' on a gravestone at El Alemain taught me yet again,
once we have done our best it is a matter of chance, luck and fate.
19

So many of the imperatives of phenomenological research (indeed any study) come


down to basic human qualities of courtesy, consideration for others - and for oneself,
thoughtfulness, patience, responsibility, integrity - and a sense of irony or wit. It is
these very human qualities that are employed in both art making and ethical
reasoning so that neither operates in a nihilistic vacuum. On the contrary, I would
say along with Caputo with respect to ethics (2003), Martin with respect to art
making (Von Dieter Schwarz Ed.1991) and van Manen with regard to
phenomenological research (1996) it highlights just how difficult it is in the 'nitty
gritty messiness' of the ordinary circumstances of our lives to work out the best thing
to do. However, despite the difficulties of not having proscriptive rules, it would
make little sense to endorse an ethical framework that did not take account of the
particular exigencies of both art making and phenomenological study - neither of
which have 'rules' that can be proscribed nor results predicted in advance.
20

4. OBJECTIVES OF THE PROGRAM OF RESEARCH AND THE


RELATIONSHIP TO PUBLISHED RESEARCH IN THE SAME FIELD

The objectives of a phenomenological study are deceptively simple - to gain a deeper


appreciation and awareness of a particular phenomenon as it reveals itself in our
lived experience. To gain a deeper understanding of the phenomenon of creating for
myself as a visual artist is similarly deceptively simple. No phenomena, however,
exist in isolation anymore than I can define my identity without reference to others
and the Other (Taylor 1993). Furthermore, any exploration has certain reference
points from which one begins a journey and others that serve as markers along the
road. Some of those reference points and markers have already been described in the
Background to the Study. This Chapter further sketches the landscape of the Study
by describing how some of the particular terms are used in this research - notably
'trauma' and 'landscape' itself.

The experiences referred to in the Background to the Study have been some of the
most defining and transformative of my life and work as an artist. The Review of
Related Literature in Chapter 6 will further detail the paucity of literature concerning
several of the fields of experience explored in this Study. For now, however, the
experience of the descendants of ex-servicemen and women is relatively untouched
(Wajnryb 2001). Second, the experience of artists after traumatic events - for
example, service as a war artist - is again largely missing from the literature. I do not
call myself a war artist although with some of my experiences of AIDS and the after
effects of war I felt as though I was in a war zone. I have been irrevocably changed
by those experiences - even 'traumatized'. Third, artists' research of their own
practice is comparatively rare and there is, as yet, scant literature by visual artists
(Hunter1999). By researching the deeply personal, an artist might give rise to both
the production of significant works and a penetrating understanding of the meaning
of the process of art making. The value of this lies in several directions. First, the
only way that we can apprehend a universal or objective value is by and through the
personal. As Stewart and Mickunas (1990,p.65) have explained (so pertinently for a
phenomenological study):
21

In pre-reflective experience, the subject and world are not distinct; they are
rather the givens of concrete experience which can only be separated by a
process of abstraction. Any reflection - whether theoretical or practical -
already assumes man's prereflective experience of the world and his activity
in the world.

Second, as Asker (a performance dance artist) (1997,p.19) has said ' what
characterizes my research is its focus on processes underpinning creative and artistic
work. I am not concerned to contextualize a body of existing work or even work that
is being made, but I am investigating the "experience" of art making.'

A phenomenological study of art making does not only expose what happens when
artists make art, it exposes its moral dimensions as well in that both maker, viewer
and reader are encouraged to think and act more 'rightly' (Midgley 1989). There is
an ethical and transformative character to research (van Manen 1990) and, perhaps,
especially to research into art practice in its several dimensions (Sullivan 2003)
which might lead to a reclamation of art as a 'vocation' where 'the artist (is at) the
service of a vocation which penetrates (artistic activity) to its very core' (Levinas in
Hand ed.1992, p.151). This is an important consideration when others expect much
from us (Edschmid in Buenger Ed.1997; Kramer in Bull Ed.2003). Lyas
(1997,p.109) speaks about the role of art after Auschwitz:

..some have said that in the face of the Nazi death camps art must be silent.
They must feel that to make art out of that suffering is to make an object for
aesthetic enjoyment out of it, and that seems (as) obscene

However, he goes on to say:

Those who produced art in the camps wished to articulate how it was with
them, partly to get that inchoate burden clear. I, too, have my burdens,
inchoate and struggling to be born into clarity, about those horrors. I need
artists to articulate these. When that happens the pain of these things will not
be eased, but the burden of the inchoate will be lifted by that expression.
22

I am more acutely haunted by an observation by Larry Kramer (in Bull Ed.2003,


p.xv) in a volume of essays marking the twentieth anniversary of the AIDS epidemic
- that it would appear many writers have abrogated their responsibility to witness to
their own times - they have never written about the global impact and implications of
AIDS. When Kramer reels off renowned name after renowned name - 'Arthur
Miller… Philip Roth..A.S. Blyatt…Harold Pinter…Umberto Eco…Salman
Rushdie…Stephen Spielberg…Gabriel Garcia Marquez' (p.xv) I found myself
thinking 'Who are the visual artists who have ''spoken'' about AIDS in their work?'
Apart from some gay artists like Greg Leong and David McDiarmid (and perhaps
George Gittoes obliquely through his documentation of wars) I could not think of
any of our renowned Australian artists who have addressed the issue of AIDS. Not
John Olsen, not Judy Cassab, not Tim Storrier, not Jeffrey Smart …..

I share Kramer's belief that artist's have a 'responsibility to witness to their own
times' and, I believe, that responsibility is more onerous if one's witnessing has been
as intimate as his (and mine) was and will continue to be. To properly discharge
one's responsibilities sometimes demands a 'right' time and a 'right' vehicle - be it
painting or text - otherwise the experiences we seek to honour can crush, overwhelm
and silence. As they did me for some time. What I seek from this research is some
release from the burden of memories kept silent like a rabbit trap around my foot so
that I may continue to 'account for my responsibilities as a visual artist'. That release
will only come from a greater understanding and a deeper awareness of how I and
my practice have been irrevocably changed by those experiences of AIDS and the
aftermath of war. Again, Lyas (1997,p.109) expresses the paradoxical situation so
well:
What was done was done not merely to lift the burden of the unarticulated,
but done also that others could know how it was.

Unpacking Some Particular Terms

To clarify the objectives of this research and make clear its links to other research
some of the essential terms will be explored, notably 'trauma', its relationship to
23

some of the themes of my research and their relationship with notions of 'landscape'.
(' Themes' as a notion will be examined in greater detail in Chapter 5) Personal
experience, as previously mentioned, illuminates the universal and as I have a
passion for landscape painting these are my personal responses. Other artists
obviously might have a different view of landscape. However, as Gittoes (in Brims
2001, unpubl.p.10) has said about stories intertwining with art works:

I try in every way possible to make the background source material of the art
available to the audience, and this, I feel, shows respect for the audience as
well as enriching their experience of the art.

In Chapter 4 the theories of art and theories of ethics employed in this study were
explored in some detail to provide the lens by which I view my lived experience.

Trauma

Some of the terms used in this study are extremely slippery - as befits a
phenomenological study of lived experience where the phenomenon under discussion
has no fixed form. Commonly, in this study, in daily life, and in art practice in all its
dimensions, there is a slippage or interchangeability about using words literally and
metaphorically. In a very real sense it is impossible to define in one way even some
of the critical terms such as trauma. 'Trauma', one of the key words of the title and a
central notion of the study, is a word that has become so widely (and imprecisely)
used that much of its power has been lost. The notion of trauma, however, can be
understood as being experienced along a continuum. Some traumatic experiences
may be quite easily understood. Some are of such a nature that one emerges as being
like a different person – commonly described as 'more ordinary' but essentially
different. This feature might go part of the way to explaining some of the 'silences'
or 'inability to speak' encountered in the literature (Bragg 1999; McKernan 2001;
Amishai-Maisels 1993; Carthew 2002) It might not be that the memories are too
gruesome to speak of (which they often are) but more an inability to find language to
express what it is like having to come to know oneself as a different person.
Different to what one had previously imagined and often with little idea of what to
24

do with that new person and what the repercussions of the change might be. Suicide
is not uncommon in soldiers returning from war service (McKernan 2001; Miller
Ed.1992) It might not be, for some at least, that suicide is the result of a life
experienced as meaningless but rather an overabundance of meaning but a lack of
adequate framework in which to site their experiences. Trauma understood in these
terms is essentially concerned with life and death – perhaps not always physical
death (which may be less frequent) but emotional and spiritual death (which is much
more common). I still shudder at Dewey’s description of what happens when 'an
organism' is dislocated from its normal surrounds. If it cannot find a way to
accommodate itself within the new order, it dies (1980).

Trauma, then, in this study can also be visualized or conceptualized as a 'wound' - a


wound to our psyche and to our souls. To refer to trauma as producing a 'troubled
soul' is not to enter into a theological discussion but to move the appreciation of
trauma more to the whole body where, in common daily usage, 'psyche' seems to be
used to refer to our head and when people say 'soul' they generally put their hand to
their heart. Thus it could be suggested that 'trauma' is a dislocation between our
hearts and our heads - and a 'primitive' 'healing' function of art is to bring them both
together. The notion of a 'wounded healer' (common in theological and spiritual
writing - and specifically in the work of artist, Joseph Beuys [Temkin and Rose
Eds.1993]) is however extremely pertinent to a discussion of trauma because, as
already mentioned, one of the key themes emerging from the experience of the
traumatized (myself included) is the inability to relate to those who have not 'been
there' (Caruth 1995, 1996; Anissimov 1998;Crowe 1999;Greene Ed. 2000). Or, to
put it more positively, those who 'have been there' can 'hear' and recognize the voice
of others like themselves - other wounded. The implications of this for an
understanding of themes such as compassion, empathy, sameness/difference will be
dealt with more fully in the Analysis of Themes in Chapter 7.

In this study, then, I use the term 'trauma' to also mean 'wound' and the term 'psychic
shock' is, I believe, more usefully descriptive in some cases than 'trauma'. 'Psychic
shock', for me, goes some way to describing the undressing of our Selves that can
result from traumatic experiences. It is as though we have been left naked,
25

vulnerable and powerless - our normal clothes of capability have been stripped off.
Given the very real distress and suffering occasioned by our experiences of trauma it
is ironic that these very same qualities - of vulnerability, openness, helplessness and
so on - are the same as are necessary for art making. I will further discuss this ironic
paradox in the Chapter dealing with the Analysis of Themes.

Landscape and Trauma

'Landscape' is another central theme of this study and it is introduced here because,
as a landscape painter, I commonly use the word both literally and metaphorically
even when referring to notions such as trauma. It is difficult, however, to generalize
about the role of landscape in how people experience the aftermath of trauma. The
Australian war literature, for example, is replete with references to returning POW's
'taking to the scrub' perhaps because the bush has a certain place in the Australian
identity - a place of romance, of testing, of refuge, a wilderness (Fussell 1975;
Gammage 1974; Goodwin n.d.; Grossman 1996; Matsakis 1988; McKernan 2001;
Lahey 1984) And it is empty. A common theme in the war literature, as already
mentioned, is an inability to speak with others who 'have not been there' (Lomax
1995). Dealing with the effects of war there is comparatively little in the literature
concerning the experience of women (McHugh 1993; Green 1984; Delbo 1995) save
as partners or wives of ex-servicemen or prisoners of war (Peters 1996) or mothers
(Carthew 2002). The place of 'solitude' with regard to both trauma and art making is
dealt with in some detail in the Analysis of Themes.

Trauma and Time

It is one thing to say that a common theme in trauma is that of retreat and shutting
oneself off, it is another to understand why this is (almost) an inevitable response.
On one level this retreat is quite easy to understand because we generally avoid touch
to a wound because it may cause additional pain. With a traumatic wound I would
suggest that the impulse to retreat (leave) is somewhat the same as it is for dogs who,
when hurt, crawl away under a bush to lick themselves before they will allow anyone
near their wound. However, the notion of 'leaving' and 'return' is, I believe, central to
26

an understanding of traumatic experience (Caruth 1995,1996). When we have


experienced a severe shock it takes time to comprehend just exactly what has
happened to us - what is the nature of the wound - because in the immediate
aftermath much is 'blanked out'. The death of my mother, for example, though long
anticipated, was a shock when it came. It was not until I was reading the condolence
book some weeks after her funeral that I realized there were some people present
(who I must have spoken to) but who I could not remember seeing. It is for this
reason - the need for time to comprehend the exact nature of the wound that has so
shocked us - that I have grave reservations about the almost ubiquitous use of trauma
counsellors where often, as one of my friends proudly boasted of her workplace, the
counsellors arrived before the ambulances.

My reservation concerning counselling in the immediate aftermath of a traumatic


experience stems, as I have indicated, from a growing awareness that one needs a
certain amount of time before we can exactly identify what is the traumatic wound.
As with art making, the exactitude or rightness of identification (understanding) is
critical. To take as an example, during the early part of the AIDS epidemic I was
surrounded by unrelenting death. In dealing with the aftermath of that time I have
come to realize that some of the trauma I have experienced since lies no so much in
the multiple deaths (as I previously had thought) but may lie elsewhere - as Crimp (in
Caruth 1995,p.257) has suggested 'in the socially produced trauma' of few being
willing to listen to the stories of my experiences. 1 Furthermore, a too early 'cure' (or
the dreadful modern 'closure') might solidify our early misinterpretations of the
nature of the wound so that it is more difficult to unravel them in time to come. We
need time to process and think through the implications of what has happened to us

1
There is a double bind in this as Laub (in Felman and Laub 1992) has remarked of Holocaust
survivors 'there is never enough right words, never enough right time, never enough right audience' to
recount their experiences. On the other hand Lomax (1995) identified in a woman from the Trauma
and Torture Foundation precisely this quality of endless time which was one of the catalysts for his
return from debilitating trauma. Perhaps the value of the arts in dealing with the aftermath of
traumatic experiences lies in this question of time. The open-ended-ness of art making means that we
are not dependent on others finding the right time and enough time to listen to us. Therefore, not only
can we make 'till our hearts are content' but perhaps it is only then in that more collected form of an
art work that others can finally comprehend what is our world. Laub's observation that there are never
enough words, never enough right time mirrors, in a sense, the fact that the import of our experiences
is always bigger than we are able to describe in any mode of communication. The goal of 'living' then
might be 'to make manageable' rather than the mythic 'closure'.
27

and the demands of counselling - or its lack of intimacy- might send us in the wrong
direction - at least for a time2. Then, perhaps, the enduring obsessions or repetitions
(so characteristic of the aftermath of trauma) might be indicators that the import of a
traumatic event has been misinterpreted, cannot therefore be understood and thus
cannot fit into the pattern of meaning that is unique for each individual.

It could be suggested, then, that one has to leave the site of the wound (which is in
ourselves) before we can return to a healing (which is also within ourselves). What
happens when we have to leave or avoid our wound? For myself, I attempted to
'blank out' my head using a variety of devices. But the need to return to the wound -
or to answer its invitation - was manifested in reoccurring images that refused to go
away and this introduces the notion of 'obsession'

Obsession, Trauma and Grace

Some years ago, in reading Oliver Sack's The Man Who Mistook His Wife for A Hat
(1985.p.4) I was most taken by one remark - that the manifestations of different ways
of 'being' following a trauma might better be regarded as an organism's desire to find
a different way of living and flourishing rather than as evidence of a pathology.
That is to say, if one mode of expression, for example, has been destroyed by trauma,
the Self that desires to flourish seeks another way of replacing it. Then, it might be
more useful to regard an obsession as the 'voice of the wound' calling us to return so
that the wound might be healed. If one of the qualities of expression that has been
lost in trauma is the authority of our voice (because we cannot speak authoritatively
of what we do not understand) and its intimacy (which is concerned with knowing
and being known - but we cannot know that which we do not understand) what
happens in the leaving and the return? It is, I believe, the 'writing and re-writing' of

2
The element that is present in those who 'have been there' - and which is missing in those who have
not - is a particular flavour of intimacy. In it root meaning 'intimacy' means knowing and being
known. There is a reciprocal relationship and equality between one and the other. In a professional
relationship one side is missing - the counsellor is not available to be known. That is not to suggest
that the counsellor may not 'have been there' themselves (quite often they have and it may be the
reason that they have chosen the profession of counselling) but their knowing is silenced, forbidden or
not acknowledged. There is then an inequality in the intimacy of allowing ourselves to be known -
which is one of the reasons I believe counselling more often than not does not work.
28

phenomenology (van Manen 1990); it is the repetition and pattern making and so on
of art making (Dissanayake 1988); it is the sifting of the 'nots' to find the 'is' (Taylor
1993) and it is the 're-search' that is the quest for understanding and meaning as
outlined by so many writers in the literature of research theories and methodology
(van Manen 1990; Sullivan 2003).

An exercise in Obsession or Making to Our Heart's Content

'To your heart's content' was an expression frequently used by my mother. It has
only been since her death that I have connected her maxim with van Manen's rule of
phenomenological research - we continue seeking 'until our heart is content' that is,
full of the contentment of understanding (1990). As will become evident from the
analysis of some of the Books of this study my heart's desire at one stage involved
the use of shellac on greaseproof paper to make my canvases and books. Shellac
flakes are gossamer fine and only a small number of grams are required to turn a litre
of methylated spirits into paint. This exchange was one of the triggers for my re-
thinking the notion of obsession:

For some time I had been fascinated by the colour of shellac flakes.
Eventually I purchased some and started experimenting with painting and
writing on shellacked greaseproof paper. After consuming five kilos of
shellac flakes, four hundred meters of greaseproof paper and numerous litres
of mentholated spirits I asked a dear friend of mine if, perhaps, 'perseverance
might be another way of saying "obsession"?'
'Only if an obsessive says it', he replied.

That chance remark 'Only if an obsessive says it' started me thinking about the nature
of obsession and, perhaps, its unacknowledged value in achieving understanding and,
thus, regaining a measure of health and flourishing - a challenge as I have said to the
presumption of obsession as pathological. In writing this I am not seeking to
diminish the suffering that obsessive behaviour can beget in ourselves and thus for
others.
29

What if, however, (to paraphrase a story told by Caruth 1996) we consider
obsessions as like the 'voice of our beloved' addressing us - and we ignore them at
our peril? It may appear insensitive and crass to illustrate this point with a story
about rabbits. However, I have included the rabbit story precisely because in our
lived experiences - and in a phenomenological study - we cannot predict where (or in
what form) the healing insights might emerge. Further, for writers such as Anton
Chekov (in Hellman Ed.1984, p.20) - and I would suggest phenomenologists -'there
is nothing unclean in this world. A man of letters should be as objective as a
chemist; he has to renounce ordinary subjectivity and realize that manure piles play a
very respectable role in the landscape'. At one point in this study, as I was writing,
re-writing and painting my lived experiences, I kept thinking, writing, painting
references to rabbits. On and on went the rabbits until I thought I was going quite
crazy and I imagined my study as being characterized as a 'PhD of Rabbits'. In my
personal history there are several real stories that concern rabbits - mustering rabbits
as a child during the rabbit plague; migrant girls crawling under our home trapping
rabbits and cooking them; my description of memories as like a rabbit trap around
my foot and so on. None seemed to be quite right in describing the import of their
repeated presence in my writing and remembering. Then it dawned on me that the
meaning of the stories was not their surface structure, their topography, 'the stories
about rabbits' but their underlying mode of being - the mode of rabbiting where one
digs out burrows, follows footprints and so on. The mode of being was the meaning
hidden in the obsession with the rabbit stories. Once I had comprehended that
insight not only did the rabbit stories cease but that understanding showed me a
different way of appreciating the other re-occurring images and stories that I
encountered in my work. My heart was content (as van Manen and my mother
would say).

The painting and re-painting, writing and re-writing involved with the exploration of
my lived experiences as a visual artist will be discussed in the Conduct of the Study.
Suffice for this stage of the discussion to say that how I used to deal with re-
occurring images was not helpful in the long run. It is not uncommon for my
paintbrush (my hand) to somehow take on a life of its own. When I first came back
from Ethiopia and Eritrea every time I picked up a paintbrush out would come these
30

robed and wrapped figures of women. I painted some of them and then went on and
painted something else. And the images would later return. During the course of
this study I determined to follow the insistent and reoccurring images until their
meaning has emerged - I have understood what they have been trying to teach me.

Trauma in My Experience

My own experiences of trauma are varied and many I would not classify as negative.
My experiences of AIDS in particular have irrevocably changed me and now it is as
though I have acquired a new layer of skin - of memories - and a new set of lenses to
my eyes which sees all refracted through those experiences. Some of the changes
have built up over time (like the passion for painting) with the evolution so very
subtle that it is not until the change had already taken place that I become aware that
things are different and I was different. Sometimes, when the psychic shock has
been severe I do not paint. I cannot paint - simply because I do not have anything to
paint with. It is as though I have been disemboweled - there is nothing left - or there
is too much but it is in an inchoate form. The inspiration and the ability to paint is not
there because it belonged to the other time of Self - the 'before' one. And the
weariness of trying to work it all out and understand what has happened is immense.

The After Landscape of Trauma

Once, on a bus traveling from Hay to Balranald in far western New South Wales, the
bus driver warned his passengers that they would be traveling through some of the
most boring country in Australia and they may as well go to sleep until Mildura. Vast
empty spaces are not boring to me and nor are sparse denuded hills. I have come to
realize that my love of deserts and sparse landscapes has another dimension as artist
Zoran Music (in Peppiatt 1988,pp.22-23) has described of his before and after
Dachau painting self:

When I got out (of Dachau)….I went back to the same themes of life, of joy
in living, but my way of seeing had changed completely. My experience of
death had transformed my experience of life. I was only interested in images
31

that were stripped down to their essence. In time, as an artist, I became


grateful for having been forced to look at the core of things. If I'm attracted
to dry, stony, mountainous landscapes, it's because everything has been worn
down. In terms of form, the hills around Siena, for instance, are like the
cadavers. They've been reduced to essentials.

After I completed the portrait of the Vietnam veteran and the obsessive reading of
the Vietnam War I felt empty and stripped. Shock had piled upon shock until I was
like a punch-drunk boxer. Even in that denuded state, however, I knew that there
was 'something more'. I had to answer the question the face had asked of me. I had
to answer for the having come to know and see the pain and vulnerability of another.
I did not go in and paint more veterans to record their despair for the simple reason I
could not. Later in Ethiopia I did (paint wounded soldiers) but the landscape had
restored me by then. At the time I used the landscape (like some veterans did) to
escape and to record the despair of my helplessness. The anguish of 'The Eyes
Haunt Me'3 was scrawled on the sparse full hills of Nelson in the South Island of
New Zealand where I had gone to paint. And that is the essence of it. I use the
landscape and the landscape uses me. Landscape is like the 'essences' that
phenomenology seeks to describe - it just 'is' and there is no compulsion to do, just
'be'. That is its greatest comfort. Human beings ask something of us by their very
presence and because of our shared humanity and sometimes that demanding
presence is intolerable.

My landscapes of retreat and refuge are also buildings and chapels. Le Corbusier's
chapel at Ronchamp, for instance, was, for me, the desert with walls around it - a
place where I felt 'plumped up' again. The blue light of Chartres Cathedral in France
I wrote to Keith was like a balm for my soul or like being in the womb of God4.

After the initial shock has worn off somewhat the awareness of being 'a different
person' is quite strange. There is a clarity, a sense of purpose (even though the

3
'The Eyes Haunt Me' is one of the works exhibited in 'Down the Track - The After Effects of AIDS
and War whose exhibition details have already been described.
4
Letter from the Gulf to Keith, Appendix 2.
32

direction of the purpose may be unknown), a sense of authority and solidity - and yet
a sense of lightness which can be intoxicating at least in the initial stages. There are
times, however, when there is also a very real danger that one could choose to stay in
that increadibly heightened state and lose touch with reality altogether which is one
reason why all spiritual traditions advocate a gradual working towards
enlightenment. During the course of this study the parallels between
phenomenological research, art making and spiritual 'growth' have become very
marked. In each of these endeavours one must train and practice so that the honed
skills of disciplined awareness are available to stay grounded and yet take advantage
of the moment when it comes and not 'lift off''. To lose touch with reality in a
heightened sense has the same effect as Dewey's organism losing its harmonious
anchor. It can lead to both literal and a metaphorical death.

The uses of landscape in both art making and phenomenological research could be
described as being literal, metaphorical and symbolic. To take as an example David
Hockney's The Big Grand Canyon. His objective in creating that work (a fascination
with different notions of perspective and so on) could be said to be different from his
experience of landscape around York in Northern England in the 1990's. The York
landscapes might be described as both literal in that they were a return to his roots
where he had infrequently painted; as a refuge in which he drove as he visited a
dying friend; and as a symbolic celebration of that man's life (Weschler 1998). Some
of my landscapes of refuge, rest - and benediction - would primarily be the arid
landscapes around Broken Hill 5and western Queensland, the deserts of central
Australia and, as already mentioned, the chapels, cathedrals and landscape of
France.6

The Responsibility of 'Seeing'

Metaphors of 'looking' and 'seeking' are replete in the literature concerning art
making. New Zealand artist Colin McCahon (in Auckland City Art Gallery 1988)

5
Works from this area formed the exhibition 'Hot Rubber Red Dust', Gallery Agua, Noosaville,1996.
6
'The Colours of Light and Desire', Toulouse, France 1997; 'Landscapes of Desire', Brisbane, 1998;
'The Earth which Breathes The Sun', Townsville, 1999.
33

speaks of looking for a 'gate', 'a way through'. Wittgenstein (in Midgley 1989) speaks
of 'looking to find his way about'. What is also required, however, is T.S.Eliot's
(1983) map of 'returning to the place where we first began' because we are not like
snakes, lizards and geckoes. We cannot just walk off and leave a skin behind. The
old must be reincorporated within the new but seen from a different perspective. The
destructiveness of some traumatic experience perhaps lies in the permanent
dislocation where a way back has not been found - and may never be.

Entering the exhibition 'Don't Leave Me This Way. Art in the Age of AIDS' at the
National Gallery, Canberra in 1994 I was shocked by a sign warning (from memory)
that 'Some works may disturb or offend'. However angered I then was by such a
warning, the presence of the sign acknowledges that there might be a cost to our
seeing. In this research, where the art works and the stories are brought together to be
considered an indivisible part of an ethical endeavour, the question of our
responsibility for seeing is an integral part of the exploration. An analysis of finished
works does not usually provide an understanding of the costs of an art practice – nor
the costs of viewing. Implicit in painting is the request to 'see it like this'. 'See it as I
see it'. But what are the ramifications of seeing it like this? Wajnryb (2001) remarks
at one point in her research that she came to know things she would prefer not to
have known. 'How can you unknow what you have come to know?' she asks. The
uncomfortable truth is that we cannot 'unknow'. Further, it could be said, that unless
we can ascribe an adequate understanding to what we have come to 'know' it will
fester, ferment and disturb – as is witnessed by Hester’s work after she had seen a
newsreel of the concentration camps at the end of World War 11. Some images from
that film she drew constantly until the end of her life. (Burke 1983,2002).
Clendinnen (1998) draws an important distinction, however, between a vicarious
experience and one where the artist has 'been there'. 'Normally', Clendinnen says
(ibid.p.185) 'we expect the magic of art to intensify, transfigure and elevate actuality.
Touch the Holocaust and the flow is reversed. The matter is so potent in itself that
when art seeks to command it, it is art which is rendered vacuous and drained of
authority'. Furthermore, as Clendinnen continues to note, our responsibility to the
34

characters of a fictional work are essentially different from those toward a human
being:

This fictional world, however, contains a curious absence. The reason for its
exhilarating freedom is that it is a kind of game, a circumscribed place of
play. Once inside I have no responsibility beyond my responsibility to
respond to the text….Contrast this with what happens when I read a story
which claims to be true. I will know very much less about the protagonists.
There is no creator to strip away their veils, so they will be somewhat opaque
to me. Nonetheless, I engage with them differently because I stand in a moral
relationship with these people, because they are my fellow-humans, whose
blood is real and whose deaths are final and cannot be cancelled by turning
back a page (ibid.p.191).

And that, in a very real sense, is the crux of it all - we, with the authority of our
Being shaped as it is by the experiences of our lives, stand in a moral relationship
with others. This critical element has already been discussed in Chapter 4 dealing
with Theories of Ethics and will be further explored in the Review of Related
Literature, Chapter 6.

Bushfires, War and Phenomenological Research

Bushfires have been a constant presence during the course of this study - as they
have been during my life. What has been illuminating is how the landscape of a
bushfire metaphorically mimics the conduct and purpose of this research in that they
challenge the perception that the beautiful is always good and trauma is always the
horrendous. Furthermore, as previously indicated, art arises in precisely this paradox
between what we previously thought of as one thing (the good and beautiful for
instance) and the reality we experience and vice versa. Bushfires contain many of
the same paradox in that they are ugly in the suffering and destruction they cause to
human beings, to livestock, wildlife and the environment. At the same time they are
undeniably beautiful in their sheer power, in their extraordinary colours and in the
way they reveal a different way of seeing a landscape (both human and natural).
35

During World War 1, Beckmann (in Buenger 1997, p.165) describes the disjunction
between beauty and destruction - and the pleasure we can take in both:

I spent a long time in the totally ruined church. It was humid and close, just
before a thunderstorm, and the pale gray columns of the church contrasted
wonderfully with the violet sky that could be seen darkly through holes in the
church roof. Add to that the explosion of the grenades that sounds much like
lightning striking. Standing there in the middle between life and death gave
me a delirious, almost evil sense of joy.

Phenomenological research (and thus this study) seeks to see the ordinary and
everyday from a new perspective of understanding. With sufficient distance or
detachment to enable us to 'see', yet intimate enough to be aware of minute details. In
Carnarvon Gorge I watched a bushfire roar through the National Park. After the
flames had passed I noticed contours that I hadn’t seen before – gullies and creeks
that had previously been obscured by trees and shrubs. The different colours of ash
pointed to what was there before. Later I read a report on the Canberra bushfires that
mentioned 'paper barks with their bark hanging down in strips – just begging to be
burnt'. 'They need it'. In the later chapter Conduct of the Study these paper bark
strips begging to be burnt will be another lens with which to appreciate the function
of themes in phenomenological research. They beg us to notice and flag a way into
an understanding of the essential elements of a phenomenon. In the same way that
some Australian native trees and shrubs need fire to continue their life cycle, so does
phenomenological research apply such a fire to our lived experiences so that the bare
bones of the experience are revealed (the essences of the phenomenon). Linking this
more directly with artistic practice, Klepac (2001, p.20) has said 'the artist is his own
work of art; the works he produces are the ashes of his great fire'.

Relation to Other Published Work

All research, indeed all artistic endeavours, could be described as the desire to bring
order out of chaos. In a very real sense the content of the chaos is not the important
thing -even research into death, dying and grief. What is important is uncovering the
36

processes of understanding and becoming aware how the practice of my art making -
in all its dimensions – contribute to that understanding. Any published research that
deals with uncovering meaning structures will be valuable and useful and this study
will find its place there. Dils and Crosby (2001,p.78 –79) have quoted Kaeppler
(2000) 'the focus of dance ethnologists is often on dance content' as opposed to an
anthropological focus on understand[ing] society through analyzing movement
systems…What we call an attention to the experiential process of dancing’.

A similar situation pertains in the visual arts where there is a great wealth of
literature about the content of finished art works but there is not a corresponding
wealth of research concerning the meaning of process in the production of those
works. As Klepac (2001) has pointed out with reference to the work of William
Robinson:

The comments and notes (provided by William and Shirley Robinson)


provide a special insight into the work of this remarkable artist. It is not often
that we are allowed the privilege of following an artist, painting by painting,
hear his comments on how they were created or what they might mean to him
(Acknowledgments).7

This is not to say that the content of a work is irrelevant. However, it is a mistake to
confuse the content of a work with its meaning (Auckland City Art Gallery
1988,p.42). The meaning that might be attributed to a work by the artist might be
different to that felt by a viewer. As essayist Schefer (Smith Ed.1995, p.xix)
enigmatically puts it:

Theology, linguistics, art history, archaeology, music, moments of humour;


what's the linkage among these things? - well, it isn't the theme, and it isn't
the things themselves; it resides, more than in myself (which is the most
unknown thing), in the very act of gathering of what I steal and appropriate
for myself and for my pleasure.

7
Lloyd Rees 1987, 1990 would be one of the few artists who has published some of the moods and
sentiments behind some of his works.
37

It is, however, the 'most unknown myself' that must conduct a phenomenological
study and the fuller ramifications of this will be discussed in Chapter 5, Research
Methods and Design of the Study. For the moment it is pertinent to compare and
contrast the essential nature of phenomenology with that of autobiography with
which it shares some features. With respect to Australian autobiographers Colmer
(1989,p.4) notes that, because of the pragmatic and secular nature of our society,
(they) 'rarely compose their works so as to illustrate the extreme complexity of the
creative process by which a writer constructs images of self and society out of
language'. By extension, it could be said, many visual artists, are more concerned
with the process of 'doing' - making art than they are about explaining what the
process means to them. Thus, it could be said that autobiographers primary concern
lies in the construction of a (generally) linear story with some of the defining roots
made apparent. Such a story does not normally encompass a detailed exploration of
the phenomenon of 'story telling' for example.

The defining feature of a phenomenological study is that it uses the fruits of research
from a number of fields but those 'fruits' are not the central focus of the study. 'What
is creative thought?' is a question which may fascinate those in fields such as
psycholinguistics and psychology and their research findings can throw valuable
light on the processes of creativity. Vera John-Steiner (1997, p.79) could well be
talking about the benefits of phenomenological research when he says, of the
'creative enterprise':

(It is) that which gives meanings to experience, and however demanding such
a task may be, it is this sense of purpose that confers dignity to the life of
those struggling towards understanding. The contradictory pulls of joy and
discouragement, of sudden bursts of insight and tiring efforts of execution, of
process and product, are the necessary tensions that fuel creative thought

Excellent though the above passage may be it is still essentially different from the
rigors of a phenomenological study which seeks to explicate the particular colours of
the phenomenon of creating as they are revealed in a particular experience.
38

Beckmann's (in Buegner 1997) series of letters written during the First World War
are more illustrative of the elements that go towards the creation of an artwork. Over
a period of days, weeks and months he describes the terrible details of trench warfare
- the smells, sounds, the dead being carried past and 'in the semi-darkness of the
shelter, half-naked, blood-covered men that were having white bandages applied.
Grand and painful in expression. New visions of scourgings of Christ' (p.167). But
the sketches he did (of corpses blown out of their graves, farmers tilling the fields):

all of that is really not essential for what I want to do. Many of these actual
details will be useless for me, but slowly the atmosphere does trickle into
one's blood and provides me with confidence for those images that I saw
earlier in spirit already. I want to work through all this internally in order to
produce these things in an almost timeless manner later: that black human
visage gazing out from the grave and the silent corpses that come toward me
are the stark greetings of eternity, and it is as such that I want to paint them
later.

Tomorrow the field hospital plans a big parade (p.163)

It is the revelation of the thought processes as they are intimately connected to the art
works that Beckmann would later produce that make the above passage so valuable
to a phenomenological study such as this. Beckmann's sketches, for example, are not
preliminary studies for a later work as normally understood (and as seen in David
Hockney's preliminary studies for his Big Grand Canyon) but they are more the
authoritative foundation for the way in which he moves from his experience of the
particular into an understanding of the universal significance of those experiences for
all. As Clendinnen (1998,p.185) observes with respect to the Holocaust:

The most effective imagined evocations of the Holocaust seem to proceed


either by invocation, the glancing reference to an existing bank of ideas,
images and sentiments ('Auschwitz'), or, perhaps more effectively, by
indirection.
39

And this stricture applies as much to witnesses (such as Beckmann and myself) as it
does to other artists. It is the distillation of the meaning of an experience that is the
fuel of an art work not so much its descriptive features. It is here that some of the
dangers of research into art practice might lie. Art and phenomenological research
both demand a 'poetic' and 'literary' mode of thought and language (van Manen
1996):

The poetic language of the poem does not just speak of things, rather the
poem lets something be 'heard' or 'seen'. It is possible to speak much but to
say little. In the act of 'saying' the poetic text produces meaning that shows or
points to something. Meaning then is that aspect that makes something
'understood' (ibid.p.15).

As van Manen (ibid.p.16) further emphasizes phenomenological research does not


just use literary and poetic texts as a more interesting 'device' - a phenomenological
text is necessarily and inescapably poetic because it is always dealing with questions
of meaning that go beyond the powers of ordinary language.

Obviously there is a huge amount of material that has been written about artists in
general and about individual artists. There is a further vast amount of literature
concerning the various theories of art. Writing about art and writing about particular
works is a very different task to an artist trying to research their own practice. As
Asker (in McCulloch 1997) has said 'the process (of research) is accompanied by all
sorts of questions. There is 'a call to say something' and in the past I haven’t really
stopped to think much about where that call was coming from (ibid.p.21). A parallel
drawn with the art form of dramatic monologues may shed some light on the paucity
of artists 'giving an account of themselves'. Exhibiting one's work is one thing.
However, as Peterson (1997) explains, monologues (one person speaking, controlling
the attention of a group….) challenge the 'normal' political practice where others
(especially in a high-art context) speak for you'. The possibility of phenomenological
research to subvert this paradigm is not to denigrate the valid role of critics and
theorists but merely to point to the presence of another different voice. As
Beckmann (ibid.p.189) says 'I consider criticism to be necessary. It makes no
40

difference whether it comes from a layperson or a professional…All friction with the


outer world is instructive, and this includes criticism'.

It is important, however, to consider the implications of the historical absence of the


voice of the artist. First, as Peterson (quoted above) highlights the world of 'high art'
(and academia to a certain extent) privileges being spoken about rather than the artist
speaking with the obvious implication that those in the privileged position determine
what will be spoken about. With respect to art critics and art historians this has
contributed to some of the large gaps in the literature concerning, for example, the
experience of war. In some cases these gaps have not always existed as Gavin Fry
(1989,p.28) has asserted when he drew a comparison between the analysis of
Australian art published in 1934 by William Moore and those published by Bernard
Smith (1962) and Robert Hughes (1966). The earliest work reflected a view that:

The war was seen as a powerful force in the development of art in this
country and the work done by the official artists a significant contribution to
the nation's artistic experience (ibid.p.28)

With respect to the two later works 'the first world war did not even rate a single
entry in either work's index and was barely referred to in the texts' (ibid.p.28).

Comparatively few artists have written autobiographies (Judy Chicago, Paul Cox,
Patrick White, Barbara Blackman). More have had biographies written about them
(such as Frieda Kahlo, Stella Bowen, Grace Crossington Smith, Albert Tucker,
Wilfred Owen) have been the subject of monographs and published their diaries
(Donald Friend, Judy Cassab, John Olsen) and had their Letters published (Joy
Hester). A closer examination of these forms of literature is contained in the Review
of Related Literature. In spite of this wealth of material it is still difficult to find the
work of artists who have had the time and the opportunity to reflect on their own
experience, how it has shaped their practice (Foss 1998) and write of those processes.
The journals of The Grapes of Wrath 1938 - 1941 of John Steinbeck (DeMott 1989)
would be one of the notable exceptions to some of the above comments. Steinbeck's
reflections, however, share the same media (words and writing) as the work being
41

reflected upon which is different from utilizing another (say painting) to explore the
processes of the first. The journals (written concurrently with the novel) are,
however, a fascinating insight into the pragmatics of the novelist's mode of working -
and its frustrations (many of which resonate with my own experience) as this entry of
August 1, 1938 (ibid.p.50) makes clear:

Panic sets in. Can't organize. And everybody is taking a crack at me. Want
time, want to use me. In aggregate it is terrible. And I don't know where to
run. Ought to go into the wild somewhere but I am needed here.

The elements of the journal that were most useful for this study, however, were not
the recorded frustrations - nor the mapping of the character's development - but the
disclosure of the peculiar relationship that a creator has with what they have created.
Speaking of one period of work when the whole book was reviewed in his head,
Steinbeck records:

And that was a good thing, for it was a reunderstanding of the dignity of the
effort and the mightyness of the theme. I felt very small and inadequate and
incapable but I grew again to love the story which is so much greater than I
am. To love and admire the people who are so much stronger and purer and
braver than I am (ibid.p.36).

The humility of Steinbeck's words brought to mind my struggles to honourably


account for my experiences of the people of Ethiopia and Eritrea - and all those
suffering the impact of AIDS and war. My work is undeniably my creation in that I
write the words and hold the paintbrush - and yet what I try to paint (as Steinbeck
recognizes) 'is so much greater than I am' that I am loath to say they are 'mine'. The
bigger story which novelists and painters alike try to construct from the minute
details of the particular is one that we hold in trust to be treated with the utmost
respect, rigour and tenderness. Yet, fundamentally, how (and why) we account for
our glimpses of the grand story and the little stories has as much to do with mystery
and grace as it has to do with technical expertise.
42

One of the few sources of material that is directly related to my program of study are
the papers from a conference Double Dialogues Conference with a Difference 1996
at Deakin University edited and compiled by Ann McCulloch in 1997. Several
papers given at the conference are extremely important to my field of study in that
they were given by practising artists researching their experience using a
phenomenological method derived from the work of Max van Manen.

The inability of most artists to paint and write at the same time has already been
alluded to and will be discussed more fully in Chapter 7 - Conduct of the Study. Eric
Avery, a printmaker and doctor working with people with AIDS, commented
(pertinently during an interview with Walker 1994) that his artwork proceeded in an
inverse ration to his medical work. When he was working in hospitals he did very
little printmaking and vice versa. When I reflect back on my own practice as
artist/researcher it follows the same pattern. I find it nearly impossible to write in an
academically acceptable fashion (indeed any fashion at all) when I am in the midst of
wrestling with the process of painting. One stage has to come and then another.
43

5. RESEARCH METHODS AND DESIGN OF THE STUDY

Introduction

The choice of a particular research design is as much part of the ethical endeavour of
research as is the content of the study for, in a very real sense, the methodology
determines what 'voices' - what experiences - are able to be heard. In line with a bio-
evolutionary understanding of art and an ethics 'with no principles', I should like to
here deepen that notion of art by exposing some further dimensions - that art is
essentially concerned with 'justice' - and witnessing as an integral part of that justice.

Justice, like the notion of trauma, can be conceptualized in many different ways.
Essentially, justice is concerned with 'rightness', 'truthfulness', 'integrity' and
'responsibility' and 'care'. In the practice of art making these several notions are
employed constantly when we stand back from our work to determine its 'rightness' -
or otherwise. It is a paradoxical notion because, as already discussed in this Study,
there is no predetermined standard or rule that can be applied in advance to judge
whether some particular work, line or action is 'right' or 'wrong'. And yet, in
practice, we know when a work is 'out of kilter' or when it is facile or when it is a
stale rehash of something already done. Then it is possible to say we have not done
justice to ourselves, our gifts or to our subject. The way that we become more just in
our work is by becoming more aware of the intricate webs of meaning that connect
all dimensions of our lived experience - including our art making.

The notion of 'justice' introduces the interconnectedness and interdependence of lived


existence - the 'so that'. We research so that we are able to live more fully aware and,
therefore, more justly. We research so that we gain understanding because, as
Clendinnen (1998, p.8) says of the Holocaust, 'in the face of a catastrophe of this
scale so deliberately inflicted, perplexity is an indulgence we cannot afford'. We
research as artists so that, as Kramer (in Bell Ed.2003, p.xv) says of writers
confronting the subject of AIDS (or not confronting it) we honour our primary
responsibility to bare witness to ourselves and to our times. A series of paintings I
did of the women in the Fistula Clinic in Addis Ababa, Ethiopia illustrates, in part,
44

some of the intricate, yet interconnected, threads of their 'just' existence - and mine as
artist/witness. The Fistula Clinic, begun by two Australian obstetricians and
gynaecologists, is a place of great hope because the operations carried out there are
generally successful and most women will again be able to have children. At the
same time, it is a place of mourning as most of the patients have already suffered the
grief of having given birth to a stillborn child. Behind all this hope and suffering is
injustice - sometimes stemming from cultural practices that condone giving children
in marriage - and the obscenity of war that diverts the scarce economic resources of a
country into fighter planes and bombs while their women and children have no
adequate access to pre-natal health care, education and so on. All these other factors
are, of course, not immediately apparent from a cursory visit when we might be
captivated by the beauty of the women's flashing smiles and the colourful bravery of
their patchwork shawls and look no further. Like identifying the 'not good enough'
elements of an artwork, a just gaze demands that we see beneath the surface to avoid
Clendinnen's 'indulgence of perplexity'- and yet keep in proper balance the lightness
of the hope and the blackness of helplessness and despair experienced in the face of
injustice.

That art and research can (and does) impose upon us a weight of several
responsibilities ought not conceal or diminish the very real pleasure and delight that
is also implicit in art making and research because both are firmly located in the
body. It could be said that we have a corresponding duty to make these delights and
pleasures as transparent as the angst and suffering. Phenomenological research, as
embodied, is intimately concerned with beauty and pleasure - the beauty of
craftsmanship - a precision in thought and expression (even if the feeling described is
one of puzzlement and wonder). Indeed, in the same way a beautifully crafted object
begs to be touched, a phenomenological description invites and leads us to follow the
drama of an unfolding interpretation. The 'negotiation of meanings' which Crosby
(2001) identifies as essentially 'a dialogue' between the researcher and their material
(the written and visual texts) can be an immensely difficult enterprise, but the
resolution (the still point of understanding) can be correspondingly pleasurable (even
ecstatically so). Ecstasy, an extreme form of an 'existential pleasure' as Florman
(1994, p.147) terms it, is comparatively rare which is precisely why those moments
45

are so precious. However, on a more mundane level the pleasure of satisfaction is an


essential element of a research project which John Dewey calls this 'immersion in the
material world, by (an) engagement in activity which is often mundane, 'satisfactory'
as opposed to the merely 'satisfying' "(ibid, p.147)

These various preliminary needs provide a perspective within which a research


methodology is chosen. To understand why I have chosen phenomenology as the
most appropriate research method I will briefly sketch an outline of what is involved
in a phenomenological study. Phenomenology is, very simply, the study of a
phenomenon as discerned within lived experience. Phenomenological research is
concerned to describe a phenomenon's essential features - its 'essence' or 'nature' - so
that its significance (meaning) 'sings and reverberates'. The research is carried out by
'an attentive practice of thoughtfulness' in describing an experience (van Manen
1990, p.i). By attending to (listening to, 'seeing') the complex, ordinary, everyday
features of our lived experiences we are able to discern the shapes, textures and
colours of the phenomenon emerging from the exploration. The choice of which
phenomena to study is determined by our own deep interest and concern (van Manen
1984,1990,1999; Munhall 1994; Crotty 1996; Madjar et al. 1999; Cohen et al. 2000).
I am a visual artist. My study is thus focused on the various elements of the
phenomenon of 'creating' - the creation of artwork and the creation of meaning. It
can be said that creating is an essential characteristic of what it means to be human.
It has, however, some particular and rigorous contours when used to describe the
experiences of a visual artist whose work it is to create art works and those of a
researcher who must paint a transparently meaningful picture of their study using
words as well.

Some elements of creating are obviously common to all research projects, for
example, the central place of observation, interpretation, reflection on experience, the
centrality of insights and so on. My study is concerned to discern how those essential
elements of the phenomenon of creating emerge from within my lived experience as
an artist.
46

Phenomenological research is concerned to study a phenomenon in a very particular


way – in the life world as we immediately experience it – in our ordinary, everyday
lives – pre-conceptually, pre-theoretically, pre-reflectively (Husserl in van Manen
1990; Stewart et al.1990). With philosophy (and thus with phenomenology) we
obtain the data or material for our examination, exploration, research by means of a
close examination of the lived experience of human beings. There is no other place
to find the material because of the very nature of what philosophy is – an exploration
of the 'is-ness' of things (phenomena) which only exist within an experience of 'the
life world'. One needs to know the essence or nature of a phenomenon before they
can be sorted into categories -as, for instance, we say this is an example of
'thoughtlessness'. It is in this pre-categorical state that new insights and knowledge
can arise. The immediate closeness of our description to the experience can subvert
our normal mode of categorization and leave open the nakedness of the experience -
which may, to our surprise, become clothed in a category different to what we might
normally expect. It is a difficult mode of thinking and research because, as Midgley
(1989) explains, it is necessary to keep the mind focused on how we are thinking not
on what we would like to be thinking about. Our normal use of language might be
termed topographical and descriptive as, for example, we describe the appearance of
a painting as being made up of various colours, textures of pigment and so on. And
such a description might be very colourful and engaging. The purpose of a
phenomenological description of a painting is very different because we are
concerned to illuminate our experience of it - as a viewer and as its creator. For both
viewer and creator the experience of the work might be one of puzzlement - we do
not understand it. We are then obliged to keep returning to our conversation with it
to try and unravel its meaning - not of the painting per say (because it can only enter
our 'life world' through our dialogue with it) but with our experience of it.

As previously discussed, phenomenology is concerned with the study of essences. It


is an examination and exploration of what are the essential elements that go to make
a 'thing', a phenomenon, what it is. Like regarding a good artwork,
phenomenological research seeks to identify those elements that are essential to its
composition, and those elements that cannot be taken from it. The way
phenomenological research is conducted is by and through the attentive practice of
47

thoughtfulness. That is we puzzle and wonder with all our being – all our attention,
care and love about what it means - the significance of this phenomenon in the
ordinary, day to day experiences of our lives.

Phenomenology as the most appropriate research 'method' for this research.

As outlined earlier this research seeks to uncover the meaning and significance that
some lived experiences (particularly as they relate to the after effects of AIDS and
War) have had on my practice as a visual artist. There is a difference between
comprehending the project of phenomenology intellectually and understanding it
from within the practice that I will discuss further below (van Manen 1990, p.i). The
conduct of a program of research is situated in the 'being' of the researcher. To judge
its appropriateness – to the task and to the researcher – it is necessary to examine
some of the personal needs and characteristics of the researcher. In so doing,
inevitably, the essential elements of phenomenological research are revealed.

Research within one's own practice

The topic of my research program is 'Memories are not Silence; the trauma of
witnessing and art making. A phenomenological exploration of my lived
experiences as an artist. As the notion of 'silence' is central to this study it would
be well to link it to the choice of research methodology. In a very real sense silence
is experienced when we are forced into a way of being that does not fit the fullness of
our particular being and thus, we are obliged to 'leave bits out'. Those 'left out bits'
could be described as hidden or silenced. I have said that I do not know whether I
paint to think or think to paint. The two are so intertwined that it is difficult to
separate out one from the other or to choose one as more important as the other, and,
perhaps, they are essentially the same thing - even though I cannot do both at the
same time as I will discuss later. Suffice to say at this stage that if I am seeking to
understand some particular aspects of my lived experiences I cannot leave out my
painting anymore than I can leave out my writing - both have to be applied to the
practicalities of my study. Samuel C. Florman (1994, p.118) is here discussing the
48

'existential pleasures of engineering' but he could well be speaking of myself as a


visual artist:

'homo faber does not merely putter around, nor is he interested only in
survival and comfort. He shares the values and ideals of the human race -
mercy, justice, reverence, beauty and the like. But he feels that these abstract
concepts become meaningful only in a world where people lead authentic
lives - struggling, questing and creating'.

It is primarily because phenomenology is anchored in the complex realities of


ordinary lived experience - described in everyday language - that it is an ideal
method for this study - for me. Many people can experience some modern
architecture as barren, harsh and un-welcoming in that the spaces intimidate and thus
curtail their feelings of freedom, comfort and safety. In much the same way as
Midgley (1989) notes of some modes of philosophical inquiry, obscure and technical
jargon that is incomprehensible to those 'not in the know' operates as an inhospitable
space - throwing up barriers to intimacy (knowing and being known by another) and
trust. For this reason I am distrustful of ungrounded theorizing that is not constantly
checked against lived experience (and vice versa) because it can neglect the reality of
how we use language. As van Manen (1990, p.10) points out 'virtually every word
we utter ultimately derives from some image thereby betraying its metaphoric
genesis'. This assertion was made in response to an observation by Nietzsche that 'all
language, and therefore all truth and error, is metaphoric in origin' (ibid, p.10)
However, that we are left with metaphors to describe the lived structures of meaning
is not a critical deficit but merely mirrors the manner in which we commonly use
language. To take an example, when confronted by experiences that go to the heart
of what it means to be human - be they of joy or of sorrow - we feel that our
experiences 'overflow' 'they are too big ' for our physical bodies, our ordinary
language reaches its limits and we reach for another - that of poetry with its
metaphors, similes, different rhythms and so on. What is of more importance in so
far as a phenomenological study is concerned (or any study for that matter) is to be
aware of what image we have consciously or unconsciously attached to a particular
word or phrase. It is only by being aware of these hidden images that we can
49

properly attend to and describe the lived experience we are seeking to understand.
(see van Manen 1990, p.9; 1996)

Second, in our lived experience insights are gleaned from many sources - from
novels, biographies and autobiographies (van Manen 1996), from an experience of
music and from cookery books (Vella 2000), from conversations with others, from
viewing photographs (Clendennin 1998) and so on. Yet, at some earlier times in my
academic career I felt an immense frustration because these many ways in which I
had come to learn had to be excluded from my work - resulting in an impoverished
(and, to my mind, dishonest) mono-dimensional bibliography. Phenomenology, on
the other hand, welcomes a practical wisdom from whichever source - and, in fact,
the researcher is encouraged to read 'widely and deeply' the experiences of others
(especially 'sensitive artists'!) so that we can 'vicariously' live 'the truth experiences'
of others (van Manen 1990, p.13). The eclectic mix of aids to assist the journey of
discovery is especially appropriate for an artist/researcher because in art making the
only constraint in the material used in the construction of an art work is whether it
works or not (see Kiefer's use of straw, lead and paint [Rosenthal 1987] Gascoigne's
feathers and used roadwork signs [Bush Ed.1997] Simcock's blown tyres and
smashed reflectors [Warwick Art Gallery 2003]).

Third, I have chosen phenomenology as a research method because the puzzles that I
needed to resolve and to understand concerned my lived experiences. Put simply I
needed to research within my own practice as it had to be from within that practice
that the sense must come. A close and detailed exploration of lived experience is a
particular province of phenomenology and this was one reason that this mode of
research was chosen. Last, a phenomenological study involves the being of the
researcher - and its aim is to enable us to live more attentive, more aware, more
meaningful, more responsible lives as human beings. As such it is essentially a
moral and ethical endeavour. As van Manen has it 'phenomenology is a philosophy
of the unique, the personal, the individual which we pursue, against the background
of an understanding of the logos of Other, the Whole, or the Communal' (1990, p.ii).
To grasp the meaning of my lived experiences is a task (like painting my paintings)
that I cannot devolve to any one else except myself. That, of course, does not mean
50

that I cannot look to others for inspiration and guidance - and I have (to many) but
the ultimate responsibility for making sense of my lived experiences is mine and
mine alone.

The conduct of phenomenological research

The conduct of a phenomenological study is one fraught with contradictions in that


the writing ought to reveal the ways by which one comes to a deeper and deeper
awareness of the phenomenon under examination. That transparency of process I
count as one of the invaluable aspects of a phenomenological study. It is like seeing
all the preliminary studies - the pencil and ink sketches, the photographic collages,
the written musings and so on of David Hockney's The Big Grand Canyon - in
company with the finished work. However, in a study such as this (as far as the
majority of the written thesis is concerned) the 'finished' work is the last draft of the
exploration where much has already been edited out so we are left with a relatively
polished work. My growing into this study was not so seamless and mirrored, to a
certain extent, the 'prior state' of historian Inga Clendinnen before she began her
series of essays 'reading the Holocaust'. Clendinnen writes that she had considered
herself well versed about the Holocaust having read much about that tragedy 'for
much the same reason that (she) read the memoirs and poems which came out of the
trenches of World War1, as a matter of moral and social duty: attention ought to be
paid to extreme human suffering and we must do what we can to make some human
sense out of it' (1998, p.2). However, Clendinnen was still 'baffled' by the Holocaust
and:

I felt guilty about my bafflement because I suspected its origins: that it arose
because my reading of the Holocaust had been no more than dutiful: that I
had refused full imaginative engagement. (ibid. p.3)

I cannot say if 'I refused full imaginative engagement' with my lived experiences but
I do know that, at one stage early in the study, I found myself frustrated and bored by
what I was writing and painting. I thought 'Is this all there is to it?' 'I know all this'.
In the same way as Clendinnen had read much, I had read much phenomenological
51

literature and I knew that phenomenology was philosophy - but at another level I did
not know - yet. I had not 'dropped into' a philosophical mode of thought that I knew
from my earlier studies of philosophy was very different from a normal mode of
thought - and an extraordinarily difficult one at that. However, it did happen and
then it made the whole enterprise of a phenomenological study not only
comprehensible but also possible - and fascinatingly enjoyable (mostly). What came
more slowly was the realization (yet again) of just how radical the nature of
phenomenology was - that it only has validity when it is concerned with being and
becoming - how we live, how we think, and how we take responsibility for what
emerges from those processes. Van Manen (1990, p.2) asserts 'in phenomenological
research the is always implies a possible ought. So, in addition to the fact that it is
not possible to do phenomenology with only halves (or quarters or tenths) of
ourselves, there is a moral imperative to be changed by what emerges from the
conduct of our study - the 'transformative' element of research that Sullivan (2003,
p.10 -11) has identified - that is, what we create 'has the capacity to reveal, critique,
and transform what we know'. As human beings our flourishing is interrelated and
interdependent with others and the Other and, thus, what we know and understand
directly and intimately affects how we live our lives with responsibility and integrity.

One of the most attractive aspects of phenomenological research is its lyrical


sensuous quality. The renown phenomenological writers frequently speak of singing
- 'a language that sings the world' (Merleau-Ponty as quoted in van Manen 1990, p.2)
'gifts that call us to make a response' (Marcel as quoted in van Manen 1990, p.15)
'phenomenology like poetry is a poetizing project: it tries an incantive, evocative
speaking, a primal telling, wherein we aim to involve the voice into an original
singing of the world' (van Manen 1990, p.2) It brings to mind Le Corbusier's desire
for his chapel at Ronchamp when he wanted 'the stones to sing' or Bruce Chatwin's
Songlines (1987) there so that we can sing our way through the desert. The image of
research as 'singing' has an immensely human quality about it - as though the
experiences we seek to understand have a voice and language of their own (which
they have) and to listen to their song we have to learn to listen not only to their words
but to their silences. Singing, of its very nature, carves out a space that is different
from our ordinary mode of being in speech. As it is within this 'sacred' space that our
52

understanding will come, it is the task of the researcher to cultivate the


'phenomenological virtues' of patience, tact, perseverance, courage and so on that
enable us to create and sustain those enabling spaces.

Some mention is made in the literature of phenomenological research of the notions


of 'gift' and 'mystery'. I cannot bring to mind a reference to the notion of 'grace'.
Rarely, in what I have read, have these several notions been given due prominence.
Yet, in view of what has just been discussed, it is necessary to think of our
paintbrushes, for instance, sometimes having a song of their own. In fact, the
language of artists is replete with such references. At the end of a particular period of
painting, for example, Lloyd Rees has said 'it was as thought the Spirit behind Nature
took hold of my brush. And I can only bow my head in thanks' (Hawley1993; Rees
1988) On the other hand Olsen swears because he feels 'the muse' has abandoned him
(Olsen 1997) Occasionally I have completed works that have 'sung'. They have a
particular quality that is different even from my normal 'good' works. Yet, as I
cannot will such works into existence, they must be considered gifts that could be
said to sing to me - and call for some response from me.

As I have already briefly discussed a research method must fit not only the task at
hand but the particular person of the researcher. Phenomenology is, as I have said,
the only way that I might research my own practice from the 'inside out'. Of equal
importance is the fact that, in many ways, the practice of phenomenological research
closely resembles the way of art making. These similarities will be briefly sketched
here and will be discussed in greater depth in the analysis of the various themes as
they have arisen in the course of the study.

Essential Elements of Phenomenological Research and Their Relationship to


Art Making

The most defining feature of phenomenological research in relation to art making is


the fact that there is no predetermined picture at the beginning and there can be no
predetermined picture of the completed work. It therefore requires an openness to
ambiguity, fluidity and open-ended-ness. Like an artwork, the form emerges in the
53

doing. (van Manen 1984,1990) This is very different from other forms of research
methodologies where it is possible to formulate a precise question at the beginning,
and measure the success of the study by how well the question has been answered at
the end. To a certain extent some parts of that type of research could be contracted
out to others. The aim of phenomenological study, however, is not to achieve 'a
result' as such but a deeper and more profound awareness of the meaning of a
phenomenon being explored - with the process of the research (in all its stages) being
anchored in the being of that person. The process of research cannot, therefore, be
separated from the researcher and 'hived off' onto others (van Manen 1990). It could
be suggested, then, that a phenomenological study is one of the more demanding
modes of research in that the diffuse openness to the gathering of material; the
intense and sustained reflection; the pondering and the construction of the intricate
webs of meaning cannot be devolved to any one else. Nor, obviously, can the
listening to and learning from the 'song' of the lived experience.

The experience of being surprised by what we have written or painted is a common


one for artists. As artists and researchers there is a need to learn from what we have
created – to listen to our work – and to let it teach us. 'Listen to it with your eyes and
your stomach. It will tell you what it needs if you listen to it' is what I teach.
'Listening' 'Learning from what we have written' 'Dialogue' are fundamental and key
notions of phenomenological research - but sometimes at a different level. A
common element in an artist's experience of art making is an absence of the
awareness of thinking. (Beckmann in Buenger 1997; Robinson in Klepac 2001) I
say I do not think about anything when I paint. I just paint. Obviously that is not
strictly accurate. I must think (at least subconsciously) but I am often not aware that
'I am thinking'. This paradox will be further explored in the section discussing some
of the themes that have arisen in the study.

Art making requires a different way of 'seeing'. In phenomenological terms it is


called asking questions of our lived experiences, dialoguing with them – as van
Manen (1990) would call it having a 'phenomenological conversation'. This is as
distinct from an ordinary conversation when the minutiae are so taken for granted
that they slip from consciousness and awareness. Such a conversation is more akin
54

to Henri Nouwen's (1979) 'intimacy of letter writing' where, relieved of the


distraction of a physical presence, we often feel more freedom to reveal ourselves.
Having said that it is also true that in our seeing and listening we often do not check
our assumptions until confronted by the unease of a misunderstanding (Munhall
1994). A lack of understanding blocks the next stage of enlightenment that requires
that the meaning of a particular phenomenon must fit into a larger pattern because:

no pattern is an isolated entity. Each pattern can exist in the world, only to
the extent that it is supported by other patterns; the larger patterns in which it
is embedded, the patterns of the same size that surround it, and the smaller
patterns which are embedded in it (Alexander et al.1977, p.xiii).

Phenomenology and Me

Munhall (1994) asserts that phenomenology is not the appropriate research


methodology for everyone - nor for every stage of a researcher's career. If I have
found it not only appropriate but engaging and exciting, why is this so? I was
heartened to read van Manen quoting the Dutch psychiatrist van den Berg (in
Bachelard 1964, p.xxiv) who said that 'poets and painters are born phenomenologists'
(van Manen 1996, p.22). What it is, though, about poets and painters that make them
suitable for a phenomenological study? The first thing I love about phenomenology
is that it has given me the opportunity to reflect on and research my own practice,
and it has given me the way for which I have been looking for years. The choice for
a phenomenological study has also explained why other systems or methods have
been unsatisfactory. To mention 'trauma', for example, has almost invariably been
met with a direction to psychology or a therapy model of research, both of which
employ a 'cognitive meaning (which) corresponds to ordinary communicative
understanding' (van Manen 1996, p.20) which is different from the 'noncognitive' and
'poetic' language of phenomenology. This, as van Manen (ibid) explains 'refers to
the experience of meaning that is evoked by language but that also goes beyond
language, transcends language'. Phenomenology, then, does not privilege
psychology over and above any other interpretation that may eventually be applied to
55

themes that may emerge from the study. As a phenomenological mode of thought is
philosophical it gets under so many layers that have blocked my searches in the past.

Phenomenological research is very demanding and is a very difficult way of


thinking. Any research is difficult but phenomenology is especially so in the
precision of thought it demands. I believe you have to train for it just the same as
you have to train yourself to see differently to be an artist and train yourself to use
your tools. My training for this study has first and foremost been my studies in
philosophy and ethics, and, equally as importantly, my long - standing practice as a
visual artist where one is constantly reflecting, pondering and making aesthetic
decisions.

The surprising benefit of a phenomenological methodology is a relief from the


burden of judgment - even though as an ethical endeavour it has profound moral
implications. In the pre-categorical description there is not a compulsion to 'do' - just
to apprehend 'is-ness'. It is akin to the time when, initially, I was shocked by Andrew
Carter's 1saying of the AIDS virus that when one looks at it through a microscope
one cannot help but think how beautiful it is. It is the 'leaving things as they are' of
phenomenological wisdom.

Van Manen (1990; 1996) rightly identifies a wealth of personal experience as a pre-
requisite for a phenomenological study, and, if the researcher does not possess that
themselves, they have to 'borrow' it from various people who have - especially
writers. As important as a wide variety of lived experiences from which to draw
practical wisdom is the amount of time a researcher has had to reflect on those
experiences - and to incorporate them into their way of being.

Design of the Research Project

The initial step in phenomenological research is to identify the 'perspective' - 'the


interest' that will describe the stance that one takes to the program of study (van
Manen 1990). Painting and writing, both elements of the same phenomenon 'creating'
56

are the two points that mark my orientation towards this research. However, a critical
factor in the design of this program of study is the recognition that I cannot write and
paint at the same time. The intensity of the reflection and concentration required for
both art making and writing means, for me, that one mode has to come first and then
the other. Even using the word 'first' here can be misleading because it would be
wrong to say, for example, that my art works illustrate my writing. As Deborah
Walker (in McCulloch 1997), photographer Diane Arbus (1972) and printmaker
Barbara Hanrahan (Carroll 1986) have said the relationship between reading, writing
and the creation of images is much more fluid, complex and difficult to pin point
than illustration. It may be more accurate to say that art making and writing are both
ways of researching a phenomenon - but they are also different.

The design of a phenomenological study is difficult to describe in a linear fashion


because so much of phenomenology is built upon - and dependent upon - insights
and triggers that can lead in directions impossible to foresee or to program. Loosely
the design of the study could be described as first, 'following the threads'. An
example of this was an unexpected experience that triggered a series of monoprints
that I completed in mid 2002 (see Exhibition Works Chapter 8). The monoprints
began with the blotched face of my supervisor that led to the memory of my first
Ankali client which led to another memory of a wounded soldier in Ethiopia - and
ended up some two books of prints later with Colin McCahon's 'by gate I mean a way
through'. When I had followed the images to the 'contentment of understanding' I
would stop. Frequently such a period of making would then direct the next stage of
my reading - as the period described above sent me to the work of other artists who
'scratched into their canvases' amongst them Anselm Kiefer (Rosenthal 1987) and
Brice Marden (Kertess 1992). A second design strategy was the 'paper bark strips
begging to be burnt' - that is, a specific question would direct the research. Such a
question 'Is it right to want to paint a sore on the leg of a dying friend?' and its
journey through this study is detailed in Chapter 6, Review of Related Literature.
The third design element was the conscious decision to record some of the processes
of making and this decision led to the creation of The Books - twelve books of

1
Andrew Carter, co-founder with Richard Johnson of the Australian AIDS Memorial Quilt Project.
57

drawings, paintings and writing on shellacked greaseproof paper which are contained
in Chapter 7 - 7e, Conduct of the Study, the Themes and Appendix 1. The fourth
design method was to follow certain images that I was consciously aware I did not
understand. These images, notably the 'robed women' and the 'parallel trees' kept
returning to my pen and brush no matter how many times I drew and painted them.
They ended up coming together as a critical link between AIDS and my father as a
POW - and illuminating some of the central themes of the phenomenon -
'helplessness' and 'enduring', for example.

How this study was implemented is more fully described in Chapter 7, Conduct of
the Study. The sequence of the painting and writing stages of this study were, in
large part, determined by the requirements of the university regulations - for Stage 2
and Confirmation - which demanded the written component be given precedence in
the early stages of the Study. An earlier version of the Review of Related Literature
was required for these two stages and has been added to throughout the Study.
58

6. REVIEW OF RELATED LITERATURE

Introduction

This study is a phenomenological investigation of my lived experience as a visual


artist and the Background to the Study of Chapter 2 has described some definitive
and formative experiences. As outlined in the previous Chapter, the depth and
complexities of a phenomenological study only emerge 'in the doing'. Thus, whilst
this Review of Related Literature is based upon some specific questions that arose
during my research, other references to related and relevant literature are threaded
throughout the study. Some particular aspects related to the topics of AIDS, War and
the choice of methodological framework are outlined here.

Literature related to phenomenological theory and practice is also located elsewhere


in this document particularly in Chapter 5.

Artists and Lived Experience

As already stated, this study is concerned with an exploration of my own experiences


of artistic practice. Do different criteria apply to research within one's own practice
with respect to a review of related literature? This is not a study of phenomenology.
It is a study using a phenomenological approach and that distinction does materially
determine what literature is helpful and what might be less so. Phenomenology exists
to help us to understand our lived experience of the world. War in the Blood. Sex,
Politics and AIDS in Southeast Asia by Chris Beyrer (1998) perfectly illustrates the
type of writing that has been most useful in this study. Beyrer is an American
epidemiologist who has worked extensively on the question of AIDS for a number of
years, particularly in Southeast Asia. The science of epidemiology is concerned to
track and understand the behaviour of an epidemic - in this case HIV/AIDS.
However, as disease affects human beings, to understand how best to prevent its
spread it is necessary to draw together, not only the available medical and scientific
knowledge, but to site that knowledge against a background of history, sociology,
psychology, politics and economics. Beyrer's work is an instance par excellence of
59

what I believe to be one of the primary responsibilities of an academic - to make the


fruits of their research available to those most in need of it. That audience of need is
both a general audience concerned to understand what Professor Malcolm Gillies,
President of the National Academies Forum, has described as 'one of the greatest but
slowest moving calamities in human history' (http://www.naf.org.au/gillies2.rtf as well as
other health professionals, sociologists and economists. Yet, as Beyrer notes 'All the
New York Times stories in the world are worth less to a practicing scientist than one
lead paper in the New England Journal of Medicine' (1998,p.183). Beyrer's work has
been very valuable to this study - not only because it shone light on the tragedy of the
HIV/AIDS epidemic in Australia's near neighbours - but because it was like reading
a phenomenological study where the questions and puzzles that emerged during his
research were clearly stated as well as the thinking through of all the disparate
elements needed to understand them, Epidemiology, it appears, shares many of the
features of phenomenology in that it depends upon a tactful and nuanced
appreciation of the intimate details of human experience and behaviour which
explain, for example, why the cultural norms of some remote northern Thai farming
communities meant that they had a much higher incidence of infection than similar
communities in the southern part of the country. It was daughters, not sons, who
were expected to financially support their families in need - which often meant their
having to leave their communities to work in the sex trade - and returning HIV
infected.

In phenomenology one is encouraged always to keep returning to the central question


of the study - a deeper and deeper awareness and understanding of the phenomenon
under examination. This, in my study, is the phenomenon of creating as a visual
artist. In a conventional academic endeavour one would first go to others who have
conducted similar explorations - except that few artists have written about their
practice (at least in any sustained and systematic way) and fewer still have written
from within an academic framework (Hunter 1999; Asker 2001). Apparent
exceptions to these assertions - artists' diaries, interviews with artists and annotated
catalogue essays, for example, will be dealt with more fully later in this Chapter.
The point of the observation is to highlight how difficult it is to find artists critically
reflecting on their practice when that reflection is not mediated through the work of
60

others - art critics, curators, journalists and so on. One question that immediately
comes to mind is why does this situation exist? On a purely pragmatic level I can
now understand why. Artists generally cannot write and paint at the same time
which invariably means, for example, that an exhibiting schedule must largely be 'put
on hold' for the duration of the study or, at the very least, take a different form.
Second, it could be noted that research within creative practice is comparatively new
within an academic milieu. A more pertinent reason, I believe, might lie in the
personal nature of the study. There has been a perception in human science research
that personal experience is just that - personal - and has no great wider relevance - as
evidenced by a pejorative attitude toward 'the anecdotal' (Midgley 1989). This
perception, however, contradicts the reality that any 'society' or 'community' is not an
entity that exists - it is a convenient name by which to categorize a number of
singular and unique individuals who may (or may not) share some common values
but do share a common humanity. While each individual's experience is uniquely
theirs (shaped as it is by a myriad of different factors) it must be said that to be
human is to have the capacity to feel joy, to feel pain, to suffer and so on and, for that
reason alone, we can derive benefit and can learn from the personal experiences of
others (van Manen 1990). Where ever the reasons for the lack of artists researching
their own experience may lie, the question remains 'Where does one look for
assistance in understanding one's own creative practice?' Not from within the more
traditional academic avenues because, generally, academic writers have felt obliged
to 'hide' themselves in their work (Dudley-Marling 1996).

There have been a few pivotal works that have been of immense benefit to my study
- Ruth Wajnryb's The Silence: how tragedy shapes talk (2001) Inga Clendinnen's
reading the Holocaust (1998) and Gail Bell's Shot. A personal response to guns and
trauma (2003). One common thread that unites these three works is the quality of
their thinking - clear, rigorously analytical and wide- ranging - and they are instances
of beautifully crafted writing. Second, their own personal experience was the impetus
for their research and the authority of that personal experience is not only kept
visible throughout their work but provides a benchmark against which to judge their
findings.
61

Given the paucity of published work by artists reflecting on their own experience,
one of the most valuable resources for this study has been ABC Radio National.
Radio National's various programs, notably Margaret Throsby on ABC Classic FM,
have been invaluable in airing in depth interviews with a range of artists and thinkers
whose voices would not normally be heard, or only discovered with the greatest
difficulty - and the ABC Transcript Service also provides a hard copy of many of
them. Radio has played a critical role in my life from when I was a child to the
present day. As Margaret Throsby remarked recently one of the great values of radio
is its intimacy - its 'one to one' - where not only does the guest feel they have the
interviewer's undivided attention but we, as listeners, feel as though they are
speaking to us alone.

One of the frustrations of research is that one's specific questions are frequently not
the ones that are asked by an interviewer - or not thought relevant and pertinent by an
author. Murray Griffin, an Australian war artist imprisoned in Changi during World
War 11 was interviewed at great length by Barbara Blackman for the National
Library of Australia Oral History Collection in 1986 (Griffin 1986). As explained in
Chapter 7e, Contemplation and Solitude, I longed to know why Griffin, after his
return from Changi in 1946, had painted his figures nude in one particular painting.
When the Oral History tapes arrived from Canberra I was disappointed to find
Griffin spoke very little about his return from captivity - but endlessly about his
abiding interest in theosophy and a 'super sensitive world'.

Artists, Plagues, Wars and Epidemics

As my study concerns an exploration of my experiences of AIDS and the after


effects of war the paucity in some areas of the literature is of more serious concern.
As discussed earlier I was arrested by Larry Kramer's accusation (directed at his
fellow writers) that they, as writers, had abrogated their responsibility to witness to
their own times (in Bull Ed.2003, p.xv). I believe the same accusation could be
leveled at other contemporary artists as well. Apart from 'genius.. exceptions' such
as Francisco Goya y Lucientes with respect to the Inquisition and the Spanish Civil
War (Hughes 2003,p.7) it is difficult to piece together how artists would have
62

responded (if they did) to catastrophic plagues and epidemics (such as the Black
Plague of the seventeenth century and the Spanish Influenza epidemic of 1918-1919)
at the time they were emerging. In 1918, during the Spanish Influenza epidemic,
New Zealand sent a boat to Western Samoa with some of those on board 'having a
few sniffles' - two weeks later some 20% of the Samoan population were dead. The
speed with which the epidemic affected the local population meant that many of the
dead were buried in communal graves in contravention of the Samoan custom to
have graves situated at the front of their homes. When I asked a local Samoan how
this event had influenced the later practice of Samoan artists, he replied 'It hasn't.
There has not been time and awareness' (Percival pers.comm.2002). When I asked a
tertiary educated New Zealander the same question he replied that he was not aware
of the historical incident 'I've never heard about it' (Bell pers.comm.2002).

Hollis Clayson (2002) in Paris in Despair: Art and Everyday Life under Siege 1870 -
71 has identified some long lasting effects of the Prussian siege of Paris in the work
of Modernist artists, Edgar Degas, Edouard Manet and Gustave Courbet. All three
were forced by the circumstances of the war to leave their studios and be part of a
society where 'the everyday life' (of women in food queues, going to war from home,
displacement from their studios and so on) had broken down some of the barriers of
class and ruptured the distinctions between the private and the political (ibid.p.24).
While, for Manet for instance 'the exploration of plein-airism in the 1870's continued
the inadvertent breakthrough of his work outdoors in the winter of 1870' (ibid.p.363)
for others:

There is, in fact, a gulf between instances of wartime perspectives persisting


in peacetime careers, and the countervailing and more numerous examples of
artists who dropped new habits or simply allowed them to wither away once
the circumstantial urgencies and frustrations receded (ibid.p.363).

From a review of the available literature, it would appear that Australian artists'
experience of war would conform to this pattern of some being profoundly affected
and the rest returning to normalcy.
63

There is, however, a more profound question that remains to be addressed as Gillian
Russell (quoted in the above work) explains. I shall include this lengthy quotation
because a similar situation appears to pertain in Australian research:

The neglect of the subject of war by both literary studies and, to a lesser
extent, social history can be partly explained by the view of military history
as the (predominantly male) preserve of militarists - ex-brigadiers in tweed
jackets or graduates of West Point and Vietnam. However misconceived and
prejudicial, this identification represents an invisible barrier, ensuring that
military history has remained unaffected by the interdisciplinary change
sweeping the humanities as a whole in recent years. It has also allowed
literary studies and social history to be incurious about the subject of war, as
if by approaching it one was somehow politically compromised (in The
Theatres of War: Performance, Politics and Society, 1793 - 1815 [1995.pp.2-
3]).
McCormack and Nelson (1993) have highlighted the fact that there has still not been
any sustained academic study of the impact of the POW experience on the Australian
identity. Research (and personal memoirs) has largely concentrated, as Russell (in
Hollis 2002) has noted on the very 'masculine' areas of interest 'guns, tanks,
aeroplanes and battles' - and in the case of POW's graphic and detailed accounts of
their imprisonment. This is so even in very recent publications dealing with
experience of the Vietnam War, and even with the Second World War. The primary
focus has been concerned with reliving the experience of some 30 or 60 years ago
with, perhaps, a few pages or paragraphs dealing with their present situation and how
they lived after their return (Lomax 1995; Peek 2003). Such works speak volumes
about the trauma of war in that the authors are able to recount their experiences in
such faithful detail after so many years, but their truncated stories shed little light on
how their traumatic experiences have altered the tapestry of our contemporary
society.

The earlier section discussing Trauma suggests that 'hidden and silenced' suffering
(arising from the after effects of war and AIDS amongst other causes) is widespread
in Australian contemporary society - so much so that it has become 'normal' and un-
64

remarked. There is, however, a further issue that is rarely mentioned in the literature
- an enjoyment of war as described by war correspondent John Hinde in an interview
with Tim Bowden (1991):

And also people think - I don't know about Vietnam - but people think that
war is very terrible and so on, but an awful lot of people enjoy it, and I think
we need to remember that. An awful lot of people love it, and miss it when
they don't have it. Think I missed it myself.

This truth might account for some of the hidden trauma of war's aftermath - in that
'loving war' is not an emotion most would find acceptable (unless it refers to the
value of male mateship) and would thus not be spoken much less written. More
tellingly as far as a caring Australian society is concerned is Hinde's later accusation:

(soldiers) may have been the most proficient killing machine that his country
ever produced. He was probably going to be the worst bloody civilian
because no one was going to do the training and that was one of the things
that I always said - that I was never detrained.

Probably the civilians didn't appreciate that need perhaps - the ones that had
been in Australia all the time didn't realize how different you'd become
(Bowden)

That's right, that's right. Well we had to stop killing, you know. That took a
hell of a lot - found it very difficult not to kill a man when he got angry with
him….they had troubles hanging on and so much so that they began to think
that they were cowards - just trying to be a decent man again.

In her exploration of the 'short and long-term effects of being shot' Gail Bell
(2003,p.222) spoke about 'reaching a flailing hand towards the solid shores of High
Art' for understanding and assistance. 'Where', she asks, 'was the literature, the
paintings, the music?' but her 'grip never quite held' and she was obliged to return to
'the press of urban housing and the wide open spaces where silences seem to invite
65

the explosive force of gunpowder' - that is to her own experience of being shot in a
suburban street and the 'ordinary' people from whence murderers and assailants also
come. But the question still remains - if art is supposed to be a witness to our time, if
it is supposed to be something that assists the members of a society to make sense of
their experiences - why has it failed so badly to assist women like Gail Bell - and, in
some respects, researchers and artists such as myself?

There is a paradox, a disjunction, and, perhaps, a refusal of Clendinnen's 'imaginative


engagement' (1998) alluded to by Fr Frank Brennan in an interview with Margaret
Throsby (ABC Radio National 31 October, 2003) when discussing some Australians'
attitude towards those seeking asylum. 'We "know" about notions of "queues" and
"queue jumpers" because "queues" come within our own immediate experience. We
have less experience, however, (because of our relative isolation and history of
security at home) of situations where one might need to seek asylum'. Yet, that
observation does not make complete sense because Australia is built on migration
and those migrants (especially the post Second World War generation) were largely
made up of those fleeing devastation, persecution and war in Europe and more
recently from South East Asia after the Vietnam War. Their stories, have perhaps,
been 'silenced' in the same way as those of our POW's and ex-servicemen and
women - and, perhaps, we do not ask for them.

Artists and War.

Artists dealing with the subject of war can be roughly categorized into three groups.
First, participants whose main purpose of their art making could be described as
'telling it as it was'. The second, witnesses and survivors, who may share some of the
above motivation but also the desire to tell 'so that it will not happen again' and the
third category are 'indirectly affected'. Descendants (though somewhat different) and
others for whom the impact of exposure to images and stories has been so strong that
they feel a need to react to them in their art would form part of the third category
(Amishai-Maisels in Bohm-Duchen 1995,p.4). Ziva Amishai-Maisels is the leading
scholar in the field of art and the Holocaust. Her major work is Depiction and
Interpretation. The Influence of the Holocaust on the Visual Arts 1993. Amishai-
66

Maisels is also a major contributor to After Auschwitz. Responses to the Holocaust in


Contemporary Art, edited by Monica Bohm-Duchen 1995.

There are a number of themes which emerge from Australian participation in World
War I, II, Korea and Vietnam that resemble the experience of unrelenting death in
the early years of the AIDS epidemic. What has been of great interest is the number
of works that have been published in the last five to ten years dealing with World
War I, II and Vietnam. For example, Wajnryb (2001) Carthew (2002) McKernan
(2001) Lebert (2002) Lomax (1995). However, save for Wajnryb's work (and to
some extent Lomax), none deal extensively with the after effects of war - how people
were able to live with and in spite of the memories that they carried. Jennifer
McDuff, whose husband served in Vietnam, has a theory that it takes 50 years for a
personal experience to enter normal contemporary life. Ten years for the individual
to come to some sort of terms with their experience, another ten years when it is
shared within the family circle, another ten years when it moves into a wider circle of
friends and so on until it becomes readily available to the wider community in
libraries and State galleries. (McDuff pers.comm. 2000) When McDuff was
outlining her theory to me I can remember saying 'I cannot wait that long' (meaning
50 years). During the course of this study I have come to acknowledge that my own
experience of going back to some traumatic and painful experiences fits almost
exactly into McDuff's time frame.

When I visited the Australian War Museum in 1999 a curator of the Vietnam
Collection, said that it was perhaps too early for some 'down the track' works to come
into their public collection. They were still in 'private' hands. Perhaps the same
situation exists with works that deal with the after effects of AIDS as Malcolm
Gillies of the National Academies Forum reflects during Every Eight Seconds: AIDS
Revisited (29-30 November 2000):

When human beings find themselves in troubled times, they often pretend
they aren't there, and afterwards even write the events out of their histories.
The influenza outbreak of 1890-91 appears to have killed more people than
any other outbreak of disease in the nineteenth century, but you will find
67

scant mention of it in our history texts. The Spanish influenza epidemic of


1918-1919 probably only gains mention in our histories because of the
peculiar fact that it carried off more people than did the First World War
(http://www.naf.org.au/gillies2.rtf 14 November, 2003)

It would probably be safe to suggest that it was only during the 40th Anniversary
celebrations of Samoan Independence in 2002 that many New Zealanders learnt that
one of their ships carried the Spanish Influenza virus to Western Samoa with the
devastating effects already discussed earlier in this section. The situation with respect
to both war and AIDS would appear to support McDuff’s theory of stages within a
fifty year span. However while a significant number of works may not have reached
permanent collections in the War Memorial they have been collected into a major
traveling exhibition Viet Nam Voices. Australians & the Vietnam War curated by
Casula Powerhouse Arts Centre (2000). Joanna Mendelssohn (in Lucas and
Gouriotis 2000,p.36) (whose father was a Rat of Tobruk) remarks in her catalogue
essay:

one of the problems facing those who survived the war and its aftermath has
been a collective loss of memory. In the early 1970's, after the end of
conscription and the departure of our troops from an embarrassing failure,
mainstream Australia could not face its own soldiers

That 'inability to face' the legacy of the Vietnam War might still be said to exist.
Given the current position of Australia with regard to the war with Iraq (and its
deployment of peacekeepers to several trouble spots throughout the world) it is
worthy of comment and reflection that when Viet Nam Voices was exhibited at the
Queensland Museum in 2002, there were no reviews or commentary of the exhibition
in any of the newspapers. It could be further suggested that a 're-visioning of history'
does not only apply to our relationship with our Aboriginal heritage. McKernan's
(2001) work dealing with the pain of returning POW's from Changi and the Burma-
Thailand Railway is permeated with a perceived or attributed theme of 'guilt and
shame' said to be felt by those soldiers who had surrendered and had become
prisoners of war. Whilst such emotions may well have been felt by some, 'guilt and
68

shame' are two things that I had never read or heard spoken of in relation to my
father's experience of being a POW. Yet, at a Seminar hosted by the State Library of
Queensland in 2002 on 'Writing War Memories', in response to a question
concerning the paucity of research dealing with the after effects of war service, a
historian from University of Queensland responded in exactly those terms.

There is a huge wealth of stories – and art works – by prisoners of war, by


servicemen and women and by war artists. There is, however, as already discussed,
a paucity of information about how those experiences have shaped their life and
work in later years. What has emerged in my research as of equal significance to the
content of those experiences (unrelenting death, fear, grief and suffering) is the lack
of language and opportunity to speak of them 'down the track'. As already
mentioned, McCormack and Nelson (1993, p.23) point out that there has been little
academic research which might 'generalize about (the experience of POWs) and
show how those individual experiences have influenced Australian’s images of
themselves and the way they see others.' The significance of individual stories has
not yet influenced analysis of Australian identity. One study specifically dealing with
the pain of returning POWs stopped in the 1950’s (McKernan 2001). A number of
reasons have been put forward for this. Dunlop (1995) avoided publishing his war
diaries for some 40 years because he felt they 'may cause more pain for POWs and
their families'. Concerning the Vietnam War, however, as Mendelssohn (ibid.p.32)
has explained:

Some of the most moving art made in response to the war has not been seen
until recently. These are works by maverick artists, those outside the formal
and informal networks of art schools and commercial galleries. Of these,
some of the most remarkable works are by men who found themselves to be
in Vietnam, to kill or be killed….George Bostock …and Ray Beattie's art is
an attempt to grapple with the difference between experienced reality and
manipulated image.
69

Art and Descendants

When there has been so little research concerning POW experience and how that has
influenced notions of Australian identity it is perhaps not surprising that there has
been equally little research into how descendants of those POW's have been affected
by their parent's experience. Eric Lomax, an exPOW of the Burma Railway reflects
with some poignancy in his memoir published in 1995:

I began to worry, a little later, that the sins my captors had sown in me were
being harvested in my family in more ways than one. Among Far Eastern ex-
prisoners-of-war there is a rumbling of belief that our children are damaged,
in some way genetically harmed. It seems to us, when we get together now
as older men, that we have bequeathed some strange problems to our
children. It is interesting that some American scientists suggest that the
notorious 'middle passage' of the slave trade may have caused intolerable
genetic stresses which damaged the immediate descendants of slaves. I don't
know whether it is good science, but we murmur these things among
ourselves, caught between rumour and doubt. Who knows, too, what effects
our suppressed feelings may have had on the psychic development of our
children? (ibid. pp.222-223)

Much of the traumatic consequences of war service can be found 'hidden' in the
medical literature. As already mentioned, this study seeks to avoid viewing lived
experience through the lens of medicalization and therapy for several reasons. The
first, and main reason is philosophical in that I believe the prevalence of trauma is as
much a question for the culture of a society (and its artists) as it is for the health
professions. If, as I believe, much of the trauma is a natural and normal response to
horrific experiences, it essentially adds little to have those responses categorized as
'Personality disorders' 'Manic Depression' and so on. As one ex-Vietnam veteran
friend said to me during one of his periods of hospitalization and of his fellow
patients:
70

Listen, mate, one A4 page would do the lot of us. All infantry, all the same
age, all with the same history of marriage break-ups, the same history of
family troubles. Yeah, mate, one A4 page is all it needs (Schmidt pers.comm.
c.1994)
For these reasons I made the decision not to do extensive research in the medical
literature but to glean its presence in the literature reviewed in this section and
elsewhere in the study.

Reviewing related literature in a phenomenological research project also constitutes


part of 'the doing' of the research. This is more obviously apparent with some works
than with others. One of the unresolved questions with which I came to this study
was whether it was right to paint a hideous sore on the leg of a dying friend that, for
a fleeting moment, I had seen as beautiful and had wanted to paint it. Most artists are
aware, consciously or subconsciously, of the dangers in making art out of human
suffering - as Sartre has it 'betray [ing] the anger or grief of man for Beauty' (in
Bohm-Duchen 1995, p.49) However, in spite of this, as Amishai-Maisels (1995,
p.49) has pointed out, artists persist in reacting to catastrophic events in their art
making.

Phenomenological research seeks to uncover the essential elements of lived


experience - of which the creation of 'response works' would count as one such
example of a lived experience. In the same way that a portrait is sometimes said to
be a self-portrait, inevitably such works might also reveal the full range of human
strengths and frailties - disciplined compassion to banal kitsch - however well
intentioned. (Bohm-Duchen 1995) The task, as with phenomenological research, is to
strike a fine line between the 'blunt instrument' the subject matter might deserve and
creating a work that, while it might shock, does not definitively repel viewers.
Lawrence Langer introducing the translation of Charlotte Delbo's trilogy Auschwitz
and After (1995) speaks of her work as 'a literature of conscience' but to 'bring the
world (of the concentration camps) back requires a great deal of restraint'. Delbo 'in
order to bear and bare the unbearable..struggled to render her style unobtrusive,
almost transparent' (ibid. p.vii) and it is this acute 'bare boned' observation that has
provided some of the most heart wrenching descriptions of the realities of the camps
71

that I have read. In None of Us Will Return (ibid.p.6) Delbo writes of the
miscellaneous composition of those arriving at the railway station of Auschwitz:

there are married couples who stepped out of the synagogue the
bride all in white wrapped in her veil wrinkled from having slept on the floor of the
cattle car
The bridegroom in black wearing a top hat his gloves soiled
parents and guests, women holding pearl-embroidered handbags
all of them regretting they could not have stopped home to
change into something less dainty

War Artists

Australia has a long tradition of artists covering most conflicts from before World
War 1 although the first official war artist was not appointed until after Gallipoli
(Churcher 2004,p.4) and there are some differing understandings of what ' War art'
is. Laura Brandon, the curator of war art at the Canadian War Museum puts forward
this view:

What war art does for people is that it makes them understand in a way that
no other medium does. The words don't do it, the photographs don't do it, the
artifacts don't do it. What the artist can do which nobody else can is find the
essence of the experience, and in a universal way, translate that understanding
into paint which can in turn be understood by the viewer. That’s what the
best war art can do. It can make people understand what war is about and
what people experience (in Ditessa n.d.p.8)

Elena Taylor, a curator at the Australian War Memorial sees war art as `synthesising
experience and providing more than just a recording - a chance to talk about other
things that only artists can talk about'. (ibid.p.15). Whilst I am in broad agreement
with both curators concerning the potential of art to enable a different understanding
of the meaning of experience, many of Brandon's assertions - about the place of
photography, for instance, are contradicted by both my own experience and that of
72

other artists. It was a photograph by Henri Huet US Marine Corp chaplain John
Monamara of Boston administers the last rites to war correspondent Dickey
Chapelle (in Faas & Page 1997) that prompted a series of works that were exhibited
as part of the exhibition Down The Track - The After Effects of AIDS and War in
1999. It was a photograph in a newspaper that was the catalyst for my traveling to
Ethiopia and Eritrea in 2000, and Joy Hester's work was influenced by a newsreel of
the concentration camps in Europe for a significant number of years (Burke
Ed.2001). It could also be said that 'words' are some of the most effective and
enduring modes of expression in conveying an experience of war - witnessed by the
fact, amongst many examples, that the poetry of World War 1 has entered the
classical canons of contemporary literature.

In public collections (and in published work) the work of the Australian war artists
does not reveal the impact that their service has had on them (or how it might have
influenced their subsequent art practice) after the conflict had finished. However,
some material is contained in unpublished manuscripts and collection notes held by
institutions such as Australian War Memorial in Canberra where unfortunately much
is subject to a 30 year embargo under the Archives Act still current at the time when
I was conducting my research (van Dyk pers.comm. 2003).

The collections of major public institutions like the Australian War Memorial do not
just happen. They are the result of deliberate choices (or perhaps compromises)
made by individuals or groups of individuals that reflect their view of art at the time
of the commissioning of the war artist or the acquisition of their work.
Mendelssohn's (ibid.p.34) critique of the work of the war artists appointed to cover
the Vietnam War, Bruce Fletcher and Ken McFadyen, was that it was a 'banal
reportage of a bloodless war….They both quote to excess the style and composition
of the official artists from World War 1, but without the passion that drove Will
Dyson as he recorded the first mass killing of Australian fighting men.'

Whether their work was 'banal' and 'bloodless' still does not answer the question of
how they experienced their service. Fletcher, for example, when I spoke with him in
1999, was still extremely bitter about the costs of his service that had rendered him a
73

TPI. He felt he had been betrayed by both the Army and by his University
colleagues who called him 'a murderer' on his return. 'Bugger the Army. Bugger the
University. Bugger Australia' was his evaluation of his experience as a war artist and
he now spends much of his time in Bali (Fletcher pers.comm.1999).

For the Gulf War in 1991, the Australian War Memorial decided not to appoint an
official war artist but to invite selected artists (Andrew Sibley, Peter Booth, Jan
Senbergs and Mandy Martin among them) to respond to the war. (Gray 1993, p.208)
Kevin Connor was unusual in the selected artists in that he actually visited Iraq in
1991 and saw not only the results of the bombing but also the effects of the post-war
rebellion. As Gray (ibid.p.215) remarks 'among the most moving of Connor's images
are the ones of the war victims…. (his) drawings are intensely personal, and they
suggest that he found the experience overwhelming at times'. Attempts to ascertain
the continuing effect of that experience on Connor have met with little success.

Artists and the Holocaust

As the daughter of an ex POW of the Burma Railway and an ex service woman I fit
the category of a 'descendant'. As does Ruth Wajnryb (the daughter of survivors of
the Holocaust) whose study The Silence. How tragedy shapes talk (2001) has been
very influential in my research because her experience growing up with 'the silences'
surrounding the Holocaust were similar to mine concerning 'the Railway'.

The literature concerned with the Holocaust and art is some of the most accessible
examining the links between trauma, war and the arts. While it cannot be said that
the Holocaust is akin to AIDS, nor, in some respects to my parents experiences of
their War, there are certain texts that throw valuable light on the ways in which
visual artists grapple with the 'unimaginable'. Research into a Japanese response to
their war heritage is much more problematic than that of the German one to their
history (Cook et al.1992). With some exceptions, Katsushige Nakahashi, for example
in The Third Asia Pacific Triennial (Osaka 1999)in general, it could be said that the
Japanese response has concentrated on the bombing of Hiroshima and Nagasaki and
its terrible aftermath rather than Japanese behaviour during World War 11 - and in
74

particular in the building of the Burma/Thailand Railway and the treatment of


prisoners of war. Buruma (1995,p.295) has remarked:

There is something intensely irritating about the infantilism of post-war


Japanese culture…. Japan seems at times not so much a nation of twelve year
olds, to repeat General MacArthur's phrase, as a nation of people longing to
be twelve year olds or even younger, to be at that golden age when everything
was secure and responsibility and conformity were not yet required

Any artist, however, can only respond to those experiences and events of which they
are aware. As with the case of the Spanish Influenza epidemic in the history of
Samoa and New Zealand (it is missing from their history books) a further
complicating factor facing Japanese artists is a lack of history teaching in their
educational institutions - schools and Universities (McCormack and Nelson 1993).
When asked if historians would be part of a Japanese Peace Shrine when it became a
proper war museum, Buruma (ibid.p.224) was told:

The thing is…as soon as you bring historians in, you run into problems, you
get distortions. As a shrine, we must think of the feelings of the spirits and
their families. We must keep them happy. That is why historians would
cause problems. Take the so-called war of invasion, which was actually a
war of survival. We wouldn't want families to feel that we are worshipping
the spirits of men who fought a war of invasion.

Whilst the 'regression' and 'denial' alluded to by Buruma (ibid p.295) could also be
understood as a response to their own traumatization by war and its aftermath, it is
pertinent to ask 'Is the response of a Japanese artist to their country's history different
to that of a German one?' (Lee Ed. 1998; Aoki and Dardess 1981; Bohm-Duchen
1995; Buruma 1995; Fussell 1975; Geczy 1996; Grimes 1985; Sandler 1996).
Alexandra Munroe, Scream against the Sky in Japanese Art after 1945 (1994, p.215)
has said:
75

In the shadow of Auschwitz and Hiroshima, belief in the individual’s power


to affect the drastic shame of history was slight.

Amishai-Maisels (1993) comments that many contemporary German artists have


enough trouble confronting the Third Reich let alone the Holocaust. Here it might be
appropriate to refer to the work of German artist, Anselm Kiefer, whose belief is that
'by destroying its Jewish population, Germany destroyed a part of itself''; and in
symbolically reuniting the two in his work, attempts to right a terrible wrong (Bohm-
Duchen 1995,p.134) However, as Bohm-Duchen goes on to say:

Many view Kiefer's preoccupation, not to say his fascination with the Nazi
past as deeply and necessarily suspect. It is certainly true that his paintings
do not readily reveal their meanings, that ultimately they retain a disturbing
ambiguity. It is precisely this underlying tension that makes his work so
interesting - the glamour and allure of Nazism

Whatever Kiefer's motives might ultimately reveal themselves to be, one must feel
grateful for his work:

I need to know where I came out of. There was a tension between the
immense things that happened and the immense forgetfulness…..In '69, when
I began, no one dared talk about these things….what the German people
ought to remember..was a terrible part of themselves - but not as terrible as
pretending the events of the war were just history, never to be spoken of,
better to be ignored' (in Madoff 1987,pp.127 - 128)

Most pertinently for phenomenological research is his orientation towards his work.
'He calls himself a storyteller. 'My thinking is vertical, and one of those levels was
fascism. But I see all these levels….I tell stories in my pictures to show what's
behind the story. I use perspective to draw the viewer in like a bee to the flower.
But then I want the viewer to get by that, to go down through the sediment, so to
speak, and get to the essence' (ibid.p.128). Even more honestly, Kiefer says:
76

Am I a fascist? That's very important. You cannot answer so quickly.


Authority, competition, superiority…these are facets of me like everyone
else. You have to choose the right way. To say I'm one thing or another is
too simple. I wanted to paint the experience and then answer (ibid.p.129).

Amishai-Maisels’ formidable work Depiction and Interpretation. The Influence of


the Holocaust on the Visual Arts (1993) already discussed, has been immensely
valuable because 'only rarely have attempts been made to see to what extent the
Holocaust – as a major historical event – influenced Western Art, and these attempts
have been made only in passing, in the context of studies on the development of
individual artists, modern Jewish art or on 'artistic resistance' to Fascism'
(ibid.p.xxxi). Understandably this massive work focuses extensively on Jewish art
and Jewish artist’s response to the Holocaust. Where it has been of great benefit is in
Amishai-Maisels’ reflections on which artists have responded to the Holocaust, when
they have responded and how artists grapple with terrible events and horrible
memories:

…many artists, Jewish and Christian, were driven by an inner need to express
their reaction to the attempted destruction of the Jewish people and the
horrors of Nazi oppression. These artists came from various countries and
backgrounds; some had witnessed the events, some had fled them, some had
had no personal contact with the Holocaust. A few artists reacted to events as
early as 1933…many reacted during the 1940’s and early 1950’s, and young
artists continue to react to the shock of the Holocaust to this very day. Some
artists reacted immediately; others repressed their emotions for years before
responding. (ibid.p.xxxi)

Even more pertinent is this observation:

Those who survived the camps were often haunted by their memories and
produced works depicting the Holocaust in an attempt to free themselves
from their past or memorialize it. This is also true to some extent of the
77

children of survivors, who form an independent category that is still in the


process of development. (ibid.p.xxxii)

As already quoted, Lyas (1997,p. 109) has said we 'need artists to articulate (these
inchoate burdens). When that happens the pain of these things will not be eased, but
the burden of the inchoate will be lifted by that expression'.

Not all artists' responses to the Holocaust might answer Lylas' need. The work of
Judy Chicago is referred to here for several reasons. First, following Sullivan's
schemata in Studio Art As Research Practice (2003,p.6) the artist exploring their own
practice must also, at times, don the cap of art critic and historian - about their own
work and that of others. At the same time it is well to remember Kuspit's (1996)
observation that any critique of an art work in a 'post-modern' world is now, in
essence, an educated 'gut feeling'. On the face of it Chicago has answered many of
the questions posed to contemporary writers by Larry Kramer (2003) (and I would
also include visual artists) in that she had addressed some major issues of
contemporary times, in particular the aftermath of the Second World War and the
Holocaust. Rare amongst visual artists, Chicago has also written two
autobiographies (1975;1996) and produced a major work The Holocaust Project
(with accompanying book of the same name in1993) 'which seeks to 'honour' the
memory of the Holocaust victims while examining the event in a way which
demonstrates how much the Jewish experience can teach us all ' (quoted in Bohm-
Duchen, ibid.p.130). Given the nature of this study, and the breadth of Chicago's
work, it is as important to identify the reasons I did not find her work useful as it is to
describe work that I have found valuable. At numerous points in The Holocaust
Project, Chicago describes herself as being 'shocked' and 'frightened' by what she
had painted and written. That was not a response evoked in me by either her writing
nor by her visual images. Bohm-Duchen's critique of Chicago's work might explain
the disjunction I felt between the stated aim and effect:

Her intentions are undoubtedly honourable…but the result is both


intellectually and aesthetically naïve, guilty of gross over-simplification in its
78

conflation of disparate global issues….her images remain crude and over-


explicit. (ibid.p.130)

Bohm- Duchen's critique does not go far enough in trying to explain why some
works appear to have a truth that 'calls to us' and others do not. It seems that works
of 'truth' (like a phenomenological text) carry a weight and resonance that changes
the way we now look and 'see'. Anselm Kiefer's work, for example, seems to evoke
a feeling (in me) that he is determined to plough and mine the very soil of his
German heritage for the understanding he seeks. His landscapes resonate with a
weighty humanity - and every time I now see a bale of straw or a piece of lead
sheeting his paintings will be before my eyes. In the same way it will be difficult to
forget the commonplace pathos of Delbo's human beings arriving at Auschwitz
'expect[ing] the worst - not the unthinkable' (1995, p.4) and wishing they had
changed into something 'less dainty' (ibid.p.6).

Artists and AIDS

With respect to AIDS I am more in the nature of a witness. Sometimes I felt like a
combatant - and much war imagery was employed during the early part of the
epidemic in Australia (Goddard 2002) and has entered my work as such (Down the
Track. The After Effect of War and AIDS 1999). As Goddard wrote in 1991(p.5):

Some of the best poems on AIDS were written decades or centuries before
the virus. As Michael Kirby has found and demonstrated, the love, fear, guilt
and loss we experience now and associate only with AIDS, is not so far from
more universal reactions in times of crisis and disaster. Shakespeare, who did
not know it, was writing about AIDS. So were the soldier poets of the First
World War, because the sharp emotions of AIDS are also felt in war. Robert
Nichol's Casualty defines survivor guilt more accurately than a dozen learned
surveys by academic sociologists

That piece could well be written today about AIDS in Ethiopia, South Africa, New
Guinea, Korea, India and Russia - indeed, most countries of the world apart from
79

Australia and other Western countries with adequate access to drugs and education
programs. Now, however, in Australia, Goddard (pers.comm 2002) comments:

that piece could not be written….the whole AIDS response is running on


empty.

Further, it could be said, the desire for the new is not confined to the purchase of the
latest material goods. One of the organizers for an International Conference on
AIDS held in Melbourne in 2002 said they had 'done' African art and were looking
for something 'more Asian'.

However, those, such as myself, who lived through that particular time of the early
AIDS epidemic still seek to understand their experience but some different reasons
for the silences apparent in the literature exist. First, many of the artists with whom I
worked in Sydney in the late 1980’s and early 1990’s are now dead. Second, as
already mentioned, McDuff’s '50 year theory' might apply as much to experiences of
AIDS as it does to war. Goddard, again writing in 2002 (ibid.), remarks:

The meaning that AIDS art had ten years ago has now gone. It will at some
time develop another meaning, as we look past on a time that has changed
(like a lot of old diggers on Anzac Day?) but my feeling is that the time hasn't
come yet.

My natural impatience would wish that were not true - but I think it is. Like art, and
this study, the meaning will emerge in time.

A third concern, as Gott (1994, p.2) pointed out in Don’t Leave Me this Way. Art in
the Age of AIDS 'the strongest response to the impact of HIV/AIDS in Australia has
come from artists who identify as gay or lesbian' - and exhibitions that are so curated
would exclude my work. (Don't Leave Me this Way was not such an example). A
similar lack of heterosexual writers has also been identified by David Pear (2000).
That the strongest response to AIDS has come from gay artists reflects the Australian
experience of the epidemic where, certainly initially, the majority of people who
80

were infected and who died were gay men. That demographic did not reflect,
however, those 'affected' nor the composition of the health care and community
support workers - the nurses, the social workers, Ankali volunteers and so on. The
carers (in whatever roles) and friends were almost evenly divided between gay men
and heterosexual women - and the absence of heterosexual men and lesbians was so
marked that, at one stage when I was giving a paper on 'the Catholic Church's
response to AIDS' in the late 1980's, I said 'if the Church was making any response at
all it was a Church that was almost exclusively comprised of gay men and straight
women'. Yet, apart from parents of men who died (Courtenay 1998) there has been
few works by heterosexual women - Maria Pallotta-Chirarolli (c.1991) wrote of the
illness and death of a colleague and friend and Ainslie Yardley and Kim Langley
published a moving series of interviews with people who had made panels for the
Australian and New Zealand AIDS Memorial Quilt Projects (1994) many of whom
were not gay. Why has a heterosexual response to the impact of AIDS been so slow
to emerge in the literature - or to be recognized might be more to the point? That is a
question that applies to me and my work as I am one of the women who could have
written more widely but have not until now ( a selected list of publications and
papers given at conferences is included in Appendix 6). My response to myself is
both partial and unsatisfactory. At the time I was so overwhelmed by the unrelenting
death and loss that I was afraid to 'take the lid off' lest I would never stop crying and
would be destroyed by the grief (Brown Ed.1992, pp.66-67). Second, there was,
sometimes, a strident militarism in some gay activists who held the view that, if one
was not gay, was not HIV Positive and did not have AIDS, one had no right to
complain about grief, loss or anger. Last, as with so many war veterans, I think it is
another case of having to wait for a 'right time' - even if it is McDuff's 50 years - and
in the interim I painted and 'published' in that mode.

One of the great advantages of phenomenological description of lived experiences


lies in the fact that it can vividly highlight the interplay between the intensely
personal and the objective and universal. In reading and viewing the 'visible' art of
an experience, gender and sexuality, for example, are 'there' but are also 'not there'.
Silence and Invisible, an exquisitely intricate and detailed Chinese wedding gown by
Chinese Australian artist, Greg Leong (Umbrella Gallery, Townsville 2001) displays
81

such conjunction - and disjunction. Pure and achingly beautiful, the text stenciled
into the fabric of the gown demands we listen to the soul of the artist (who is also us)
not judge the geography of their situation:

When my partner died I became invisible to his family and so they could not
see my grief. My veil became my shroud. The bridal white of his European
tradition became my widow’s weeds for white is our colour of mourning.

In spite of the 'Ah, yes' of recognition, no one individual’s experience is identical


with another. Grief and suffering are universal political concerns in that they go to
the heart of the health and well being of the body politic. However, as discussed
above, those elements are complicated in many artistic responses to AIDS by other
political concerns dealing with sexuality and identity (Gott 1994,2002; Shernoff
1992; Duffin 2002; Goddard 1991; Chapman 1995).

Opening William Yang’s (1996) work Sadness during the course of my research I
was confronted by photographs of my 'student artists' from the Day Centre in Sydney
all of whom are now dead. It was akin to an unexpected reminder that Shernoff
(2001) experienced in the aftermath of the World Trade Centre tragedy when, going
about his everyday business, he was confronted by the gaps left by individuals who
'had gone missing' – just like with AIDS. Shernoff titled his piece 'Once Again, We
All Have a Lot of Grieving to Do'. It is a situation that is played out in so many
countries where colleagues are there one day and not the next. 'Gone home sick'.
Then 'Gone home to their village', and then, 'a photograph and an obituary in the
newspaper' is how one friend described their work place in Nairobi, Kenya (Toye
pers.comm.2002)

Artists and the Experience of Art Making

Asker (1997, p.19) tells of doing a MA at University of Melbourne by dissertation


but 'when it came to locating information about the practice of Australian
contemporary dance artists it was 'the artist’s personal experience, insights and detail
that somehow was often missing or hard to find'. So it has been with me and my
82

research. Practising artists frequently do not have the 'right' time to write consistently
(or at all) for publication - because our visual works are our 'publications'.
Fortunately, as discussed above, interviews are in a different category and Internet
sources and the electronic library of ABC Radio National has been an enormously
valuable resource for reflections on lived experience. One of the critical differences
between being interviewed and conducting a phenomenological study of one's own
practice is that, in an interview, we are responding to questions formulated by
another whereas in a study such as this we have to identify exactly what are the
questions - and then try and formulate a satisfactory response. This aspect is dealt
with more fully in Chapter 5, Significance of the Study and Its Relationship to
Published works in the Same Field.

Phenomenological Research

This study is a phenomenology, which, as has been discussed elsewhere, is a


philosophy. The work of Midgley (2001,1989) eloquently describes the nature of a
philosophical inquiry and what it demands of a researcher. Clear, precise thinking
with its expression in everyday language and validated by reference to everyday
experiences - 'the business of conceptual analysis and conceptual plumbing has to
start from an understanding of the systems forged in everyday experience' (1989,
p.59). In the field of phenomenological research Canadian Max van Manen
(1984,1990,1999) is one of its most renown exponents and practitioners. It is not
difficult to see why as his emphasis is on 'doing' research (with a clear appreciation
of its complex philosophical foundations) for a 'moral purpose' - a deeper
understanding and awareness of any practice enables us to act 'better' within our
complex web of relationships. Much recent research in the human sciences owes a
debt to his influence (Munhall 1994; Madjar et al. 1999; Cohen et al. 2000). This is
partly because, as Crotty (1996), points out, phenomenology’s focus on lived
experience is seen as a way of bringing 'the lived experience of a person' into human
science research. Crotty critiques some phenomenological studies in their failure to
comprehend the full dimensions of philosophical rigour demanded. Such research
could be said to rest in a 'cognitive' and descriptive mode rather than fully mining the
'non-cognitive' meanings of any particular experience (van Manen 1996).
83

Artists, Aesthetics and Ethics

Van Manen’s approach to phenomenological research has been very useful for this
program of study because his writings reflect an emphasis on practice as distinct
from some writers whose work is more theoretical and formal. I came to this study
with questions that had been perplexing me for years - one of which was 'Is it right
to paint a hideous sore on the leg of a dying friend?' To a certain extent there was a
need to address this question before others could be resolved. Furthermore, literature
that proved unhelpful at the beginning of my research became more pertinent at a
later stage – a fact that illustrates research as organic rather than linear and static
(Barritt et al.1992). For example, I had thought that the field of philosophical
aesthetics and ethics would prove most helpful. This has not proven to be so, for
example, Aesthetics and ethics: essays at the intersection, edited by Jerrold Levinson
(2001) have been 'too formal' and theoretical to be of assistance in dealing with the
ramifications of lived experience. In a similar fashion many of the more theoretical
philosophical approaches to methodology (Hammond et al.1991) were not useful in
the initial stages of the research program. A theoretical investigation of the terms
'intentional object' or 'scientific realism' is not going to help determine if it ethical to
paint a sore. My enduring dilemma about painting a sore sprang from a time some
years ago when a great friend of mine was dying of AIDS in the Hospice in Sydney.
He had a huge Karposi sore on his leg. Looking at it one day I realized I was
thinking how beautiful it was - like ripples at the edge of the sea – and I would like to
paint it. My desire to paint a hideous sore caused some consternation not the least
with myself. I tried to paint it then. I tried to do some fabric collages. None seemed
to work. Later in the study I realized that, perhaps my initial thought (that some
things ought to only be painted through the lens of landscape) might still be the right
one - for me.

However, that puzzling and worrying was the beginning of my search through the
literature for some form of answer to that question. Some insight (and comfort) was
derived from a story concerning the death of Claude Monet’s wife, Camille, found in
several sources (Lallemand 1994; Heinrich 2000):
84

One day, Clemenceau recalled his friend Monet confiding, 'I found myself at
daybreak at the bedside of a dead woman who had been and always will be
dear to me. My gaze was fixed on her tragic temples, and I caught myself
observing the shades and nuances of colour Death brought to her
countenance. Blues, yellows, greys. I don’t know what. That is the state I
was in. The wish came upon me, quite naturally, to record the image of her
who was departing from us for ever. But before it occurred to me to draw
those features I knew so well, I was first and foremost devastated,
organically, automatically, by the colours. Against my will, my reflexes took
possession of me in an unconscious process, as the everyday course of my
life took over. Like a draught animal working at the millstone. Pity me, my
friend'

When I first read that story I needed to understand what impact that experience had
had on Monet in his subsequent work and I remembered Rilke’s wisdom concerning
memories. 'It is not enough to have memories. They must turn to blood within us so
that they cannot be distinguished from us' before they 'fertilize' our creations (in van
Manen 1990.p.114; Beckmann in Buenger1997). Monet's story had provided some
understanding but there was a further stage I had not yet reached although there was
some comfort in the recognition that I was not the only artist asking such questions.
It was only in reviewing the work of Max Beckmann (ibid.p.162) that an additional
understanding came. At one stage in his Letters he wrote:

Since my fresco is also progressing….today I again have something of a


feeling of satisfaction that the time is not totally wasted. Grit your teeth and
carry on, through the war and through life. The two are not really so
different. Today as I walked among the bare trees of springtime, the wind
blew as it does near the ocean, and I even felt the way I did sometimes during
the loneliest times, absolutely alone and close to nature

I came to a deeper insight into painting 'horrible things' in general (the wounds of
war, sores or wards of men with AIDS). Even that, however, was not the whole of
85

what I gained from reading his wartime letters. In phenomenological description


questions of judgment are suspended because they belong to a later stage of
categorization. From reading Beckmann I came to the realization that there is no
difference between war and other times of our lives - they are just different (perhaps,
and obviously, more difficult) moments of one continuous being. Looking from that
different perspective I could finally understand Andrew Carter's point that one should
not hate the AIDS virus because it was merely doing what an AIDS virus had to do -
trying to survive. It then follows that an artist cannot suspend being an artist simply
because the circumstances might later be described as extreme or abnormal or
horrible. The skin of an artist is always there - which is both a benediction and an
affliction. Recently I was listening to an interview with the Laurie Anderson, artist
in residence for NASA. She was asked 'How do you, how does an artist, cope with a
tragedy like the Columbia disaster?' ' Just like anyone else', she replied 'You have to
bring it into your world, yourself, your work or else you're always mourning the past'
(ABC Radio National, The Music Show, 15 February, 2003)

In constructing this review I seek not only to identify the major relevant works but
also to describe the experience of researching. In a very real sense the review cannot
be cut out and placed in a separate section because it is part and parcel of the whole
work of a phenomenological study.

Artists and Autobiography

My study is concerned with how artists 'make sense' of their lived experience. In this
regard, as previously mentioned, a Conference held at Deakin University Double
Dialogues: Conference with a Difference 1996 has been very helpful as it focused
specifically on practising artists using phenomenology to research their lived
experience (McCulloch 1997). Walker reflected on the interplay between research
(reading) and the creation of images, Asker discussed 'the call to say something' and
'what answering that call might entail' and De Laruelle explored the different modes
of thinking employed in art making and theorizing (all in McCulloch 1997).
86

As a consequence of a widespread belief that 'any intrusion of everyday language is


seen as a pollution and a danger' (Midgley 1989, p.50) and personal experience
should be divorced from intellectual life, I was increasingly drawn into agreement
with Ker Conway (1998) and Hawke (1996) when they assert that autobiography is
one of the richest fields for the artist/researcher. At the beginning of this study I
would have tended to agree more with Ker Conway (1998, p.17) when she asserted
that:

the language of complex specialization has shut out the non-specialist, and
makes it nearly impossible for such a person to draw on these modern
disciplines (of history, psychology, literary criticism and philosophy) for the
scrutiny of his or her own life'

That criticism might still hold true of much academic writing but it seems that a
groundswell of change is starting to happen and academic writers are publishing in a
language that is accessible to a general reader. In phenomenology this access to
cross-disciplinary writing is critical because, as this study has demonstrated, to
understand our own lived experience we also have to understand how it has been
shaped by history, by our psychology, by economics, science and so on. I owe a
great debt to a number of contemporary writers whose work has made a number of
specialized areas accessible - as a representative sample, Clendinnen (1998) in
history; Midgley (1989) in philosophy; Beyrer (1998) in epidemiology and some
aspects of medical science; Pollan (2001) for an inspiringly new way of
understanding botany, evolution and pleasure; Florman 1994 for again speaking
about the notion of pleasure - and engineering; and Wajnryb (2001) for drawing
together sociology, psychology, history and personal experience.

One of the joys of phenomenological research is the fact that there are no 'text
books'. This same reason also accounts for the need for extensive and painstaking
research where one work might yield a phrase, another a paragraph, another a 'world
view' with which to read between the lines of text. It is for these 'snippets' and
occasional gems that autobiographies - Judy Chicago (1975,1996) Paul Cox (1998),
diaries - John Olsen (1997) Donald Friend (2002) Judy Cassab (1995), biographies -
87

Albert Tucker (Burke 2002) Stella Bowen (Lowe et al.1999) Frida Kahlo (Herrera
1992) Rainer Maria Rilke (Freedman 1996), and letters - Hester and Reed (Burke
Ed.2001) can give a greater understanding of the complexities of artistic practice
than many of the 'art books' which focus more on descriptions of finished work than
the experiences of the artist in their construction. Two relevant examples, Ivor Hele
(Wilkins n.d.) and George Gittoes (Fry 1998) are works where I could have expected
to find the cost of an arts practice discussed and found very little. Elsewhere, in
Chapter 5, I have addressed some of the similarities but essential differences between
these forms of writing and phenomenological research.

Catalogue essays, when they move away from an exclusive focus on analyzing
finished works, can be a rich source of understanding the motivations of an artistic
practice. Those examining the works of Joseph Beuys (Ann Temkin and Bernice
Rose 1993) Christian Boltanski (Tamar Garg in Semin et al.1997) and Mauricio
Lasansky (Edwin Honig 1966) to take some examples, have been particularly useful
for this study.
88

7. CONDUCT OF THE STUDY

Zones of Desire - or Themes in Phenomenological Research

'Themes' and 'Essences'

A phenomenological study is conducted, in large part, by an identification or an


apprehension of certain 'themes' by way of reflection and critical analysis. As
already described in Chapter 6, phenomenology and art making have much in
common and the task of phenomenology is, in many ways, similar to the analysis of
what is involved in the creation of an art work as described by John Dewey in 1980
(p.45):
Because perception of relationship between what is done and what is undone
constitutes the work of intelligence and because the artist is controlled in the
process of his work by his grasp of the connection between what he has
already done and what he is to do next, the idea that the artist does not think
as intently and penetratingly as a scientific inquirer is absurd. A painter must
consciously undergo the effect of his every brush stroke or he will not be
aware of what he is doing and where his work is going. Moreover, he has to
see each particular connection of doing and undergoing in relation to the
whole that he is desiring to produce. To apprehend such relations is to think,
and is one of the most exacting modes of thought.

What is not so apparent on the face of Dewey's analysis is the critical place of
reflection and insight and how what one desires to paint emerges in the 'doing' of
painting. All these elements are necessarily implicit in the construction of an
artwork - unless one is painting by numbers or copying. The ability to see a
relationship between ideas and fragments of thought and memory as they emerge in
the conduct of a study is central to phenomenological research - as it is to the
creation of an artwork. In phenomenology the 'seeing' of relationships that lead to an
understanding of the webs of meaning is aided and enabled by 'themes'.
89

The notion of a 'theme' in a phenomenological study is one fraught with complexities


and ambiguities - difficulties that lie, in part, in an imprecision of language - in how
we use words. In everyday parlance, a theme might be described as static or fixed,
for example, the theme of Anzac Day is one of 'remembrance', or 'sadness' or
'celebration'. In a phenomenological study it is more useful to understand themes as
being more active and organic - a tool that we have at our disposal. Understanding a
theme, say 'remembrance', as a noun does not give the necessary working image that
visualizing it as a tool does. It is like saying 'dog' and 'a sheep dog'. Implicit in the
latter is an understanding that 'sheep dog' describes a function and identity that
makes it different from a comforting and decorative pet. A working image of a
theme is an additional sign that we have to do something - like ponder on the
question 'What does it mean to 'remember?' - which obliges us to go back into our
own experiences to work out a meaning for ourselves. Van Manen (1990,p.88)
describes a theme as a 'desire' - our 'desire to make sense' - a desire to understand
some phenomena more fully. So a theme is a tool that we ardently desire. During my
theological studies I welcomed (with much relief) the image of a 'passionate God'. In
the same way do I embrace van Manen's appreciation of a phenomenological study
as 'passionate' and 'full' - full of thought, full of attention, full of desire. It suits and
fits my approach to the making of art in all its dimensions. It then seems to follow
that a phenomenological exploration is one characterized by passion, desire and a
correspondingly passionate desire for a precision of language - a precision which,
paradoxically, involves a correspondingly full discipline.

In the first instance, it is necessary to draw a distinction between 'theme' and


'essence'. Theme is active. It is our desire to understand and it is also the vehicle by
which we come to understand. What we are seeking to understand is made up of big
pictures and small ones that overlap and intersect. Agnes Martin (Von Dieter
Schwartz Ed.1991) has a useful image of a triple layered artwork. The first is our
life as a work of art. The second is our making of the artwork and the third what we
produce. The big picture, then, is our life's work - how we live our lives answering
the questions it throws up at us and is patently an ethical endeavour in that it goes to
the heart of what it means to be human and what particular unique human being we
are making of ourselves.
90

The big picture of our life's work is not predetermined. It is made up of (and to a
certain extent driven by) smaller incidents to which we can respond in a variety of
ways - some better than others. To respond well to life's challenges it is necessary to
understand, not only the nature of the challenge, but the implications and
ramifications of it - its meaning - and how the smaller pictures fit into the grander
one. The pictures are made up of various phenomena, and, the focus of this
particular study is the phenomenon of creating as a visual artist - for me.

A phenomenon, which is anything of which we can be aware (van Manen 1990) is


made up of various essential elements or essences (in phenomenological language)
that are necessary for it to be what it is. As previously discussed, one of the
challenges of an exploration of a phenomenon is the realization that the subject of
our search has not a fixed form. In each of our experiences of it, as it occurs in our
daily lives, it shows different aspects of itself and we accordingly gain a deeper
appreciation of the meaning of what we are seeking to understand.

The outcome of a phenomenological study is not a result as such but a deeper


awareness and understanding. The deeper understanding, furthermore, is
transformative in that it enables us to both reflect back and look forward with a
sharper awareness of the ramifications of our actions. We act differently because of
our different and deeper understanding - we see things differently (van Manen 1990;
Sullivan 2003).

In a sense a study such as this can be understood as a type of storytelling. A story


where we identify the experiences that have produced the puzzles; where and how
and from whom we have sought guidance in trying to make sense of the puzzlements
and then weaving them all together. The way these elements are woven together to
enable a coherent telling of the story (with its resolution) is by way of 'insights' we
have experienced along the way - with the added complexity of time. As we are
always existing in time neither the big picture nor the small ones are static and the
story might be different each time it is told.
91

'Themes' and The Birthplace of A Work of Art.

Where, one might ask, do the puzzles, the lack of understanding arise - for this place
is also the birthplace of art. Referring back to the previous discussion of theories of
art and ethics, I believe art springs from conflict - from a conflict or a disjunction
between what we do and do not understand. We are thrown 'out of kilter' by
experiences we do not understand and the normal pace, progression and
interpretation of our lives is disrupted. We can be surprised by joy and by suffering -
and we can be surprised by the pleasure we can experience in witnessing sadness,
suffering and death - as evidenced by Zoran Music (in Peppiatt 1988) being
fascinated by the 'terrible beauty' of piles of corpses; Monet transfixed by the colours
in the face of his dying wife (in Lallemand 1994); and myself wanting to paint a
hideous sore on the leg of a dying friend. Martin (ibid.) on the other hand, would say
that art springs from a desire to recapture moments of happiness (perfection) - those
times when we, in our surroundings, felt no conflict or dislocation. Cyril Collard (in
Vaucher 1993, p.119), a novelist and film maker poses a more demanding
appreciation of the birthplace and function of art:

The other day I saw a slogan on a wall: "Art lives from freedom," which is
totally false. It's exactly the contrary. Art lives from constraint and dies from
freedom. Pure art, essential art, comes out of situations of extreme
repression. And AIDS is a form of nonpolitical repression, it’s a psychic
repression. The artist can experience this as an oppressive and repressive
event that makes him want to create in order to prove to himself his freedom,
his immortality.

An important thing for me in this idea of Les Nuits Fauves is the idea of
liberty, of freedom. You enter a space and time that is no longer controlled
by laws and power, by the hierarchy, but instead by pacts between
individuals. Everyone is on equal footing. The only law is the law of desire.
92

I cannot help but agree with Collard and I will further discuss my reasons for this in
the later Chapters dealing in more detail with some of the themes which have
emerged from this study.

'Themes'

In a sense, the use of the word 'theme' is unhelpful because it is so difficult to break
free of a conception of it as fixed. However, as previously discussed, it is useful to
visualize the notion of 'theme' as a 'desire', a 'tool', a vehicle of understanding -
something to be put at the disposal of our searching. 'Essences' and 'elements' of a
phenomenon I tend to use interchangeably.

In the same way that a phenomena does not have a fixed form neither does a theme.
For me it is one of the attractions of a phenomenological study that so much is
unknown, unpredictable, ambiguous and fluid. I find it exciting that themes are not
pre-conceived and that they have to be 'dug out' through 'the doing' - the conduct of
the study. It is possible to say that we can anticipate that some elements ought be
essential to the notion of creating as a visual artist, 'patience' or 'perseverance' for
example, but it is only by reflecting on how they emerge in a particular 'doing' that
their full import emerges. Furthermore, the themes that emerge may surprise by
showing sides of themselves that we had not encountered in the same way before. In
a very real sense it is has not been possible to write this section until near the end of
the study because the themes are continually emerging and my understanding of
them is constantly changing and expanding.

How do the themes of a phenomenological study emerge? How do we recognize


them when they appear? What meaning do themes have within a study? How do we
understand them and their significance? These are all questions that go the 'how' of a
research methodology. The conduct of the study.
93

Conduct of the Study or the Interweaving of 'Texts'

I am predominantly a landscape painter. I view the world through the lens of


landscape - even figurative work which, for portraits, for example, I call 'landscapes
of a face'. I tend, then, to use 'text' and 'landscape' interchangeably at times, or to
refer to the 'landscape of a text'. For me the notion of landscape is evocative of the
textures, rocks and crevasses that are found in the experiences of a text as well as in
an experience of the natural world.

This study, then, comprises an interweaving of three different languages of text.


The first is the text - or landscape - of the art works (paintings, drawings, fabric
collages and so on). The second text is the writing that has emerged during the
making of the artworks. For the most part these writings have been interleaved with
the paintings and drawings with which they came to birth and have been bound into
books. The third text is the one I am now writing - the more formal reflection,
analysis and interweaving of the first two. In my mind (and in this I agree with
Martin's triple layered understanding of art referred to above) I draw no distinctions
between one form and another and nor do I privilege one above another. I am a
painter. Full stop. Sometimes I paint on canvas and paper with ink and pigments.
Sometimes I paint with words on a page.

The definition of research that I have adopted for this study is one that sees research
purely and simply (but with great difficulty) as a search for understanding. It is a
search for meaning that will enable a transformative knowing or knowledge to
emerge (Sullivan 2003). A transformative function of phenomenology is also
implicit and explicit in the several writings on phenomenology by van Manen
already referred to in all preceding sections. The logic of a phenomenological study
precludes my experience of reading and reflection (even of the most formal academic
works) being separated out from the other languages of the study1. In a very real
sense this understanding of the equality of the languages cannot be any other way
for, to privilege the more formal text over the production of the artworks (for

1
I am indebted to my friend Noel Rowe for assisting with this insight that was pivotal in my early
struggles of this study.
94

example), would undermine the validity of the whole enterprise. Thus, for the most
part, my experience of other writers/artists' work is spread throughout the study
except when they are grouped together for greater ease of analysis and
understanding.

The language of the Books

The transcription of an extract from Book 1 that follows below is unedited (the full
text is contained in Appendix 1). Originally I had thought van Manen's writing and
re-writing of a phenomenological study would demand that the Book be re-written
and re-written. The aim, however, of writing and re-writing is to gain understanding
- not merely to produce a more crafted work (van Manen 1990). The desire is to
reach that point of completion, resolution, ' aesthetic delight'2, the saturation of
'That's it'. 'That's what I have been looking for'. (Caputo 2003,p.178) In this study
where the writing and re-writing is spread across the several texts the insights which
lead to an understanding can come from either or all directions. In the case of Book
1 they came from both writing and painting. A further consideration in deciding to
leave the Book unedited is that, in a usual analysis of an art practice or a finished art
work one rarely (if ever) gets to see or read the first tentative steps, the dead ends, the
messiness of the original position from which (one hopes) clarity of understanding or
completion comes. It is for these several reasons that I have decided to leave the
Books unedited (save for a correction of 'wonky' spelling) - to show from whence I
came. They are an answer (in part) to 'How did you do that?'

There is a further caveat that I enter concerning the language of the Books. When I
paint I do not paint as a fully referencing academic. Some words and phrases,
gleaned over the years of reading or listening, have become so much part of me that
sourcing exact quotes (if they are exact) is sometimes impossible - and not important
for the painting. I have, however, indicated when work is not my own and I believe I
have used the words of others in their original spirit.

2
Jim Chapman, 2003, a fellow PhD student, who during the course of a seminar, responded to a
question 'How do you know when a piece of music is finished?' with 'Aesthetic delight'.
95

The original book was written with a 'dip in' ink pen on shellacked paper. The task
that I had set myself was to document the 'how' of my practice of art making - and to
test more stringently and consciously whether van Manen's 'writing and re-writing'
worked for painting as well as for words. I did not intentionally set out to make a
series of books but found myself almost unconsciously folding the writings and the
paintings into book form.3 Reflecting on this, I realized that forming and folding my
experiences into books was significant and appropriate on a number of levels. First,
books and reading have been an integral part of my lived experiences since I have
been a small child, and, in fact, one of my earliest memories of my mother is of her
sitting in front of a log fire reading once all children were asleep. Our home was
crammed with books, and books were given as rewards and prizes for academic
achievement as well as birthday and Christmas presents. Second, it seemed
appropriate in a phenomenological study - where insights and deeper understandings
unfold like a story - that the process was repeated in the ritual of turning pages. One
layer reveals itself, and then another as one turns the pages of a book. Third, I liked
the collaborative connotation of writing on my experiences - as though the words,
drawings and experiences were a partnership in an exploration. I did not want the
various layers and fragments separated out with some framed on a wall and some in a
formal book. I wanted them to be together.

Book 1 is the first time I have consciously sat down to try and describe what happens
when I make art. Some reflections on my practice I have incorporated into the
various Letters to Keith that I have written over the space of the past fifteen years.
Keith Robinson was a musician whom I first met at the Day Centre for people living
with AIDS. He was a friend and, later, I was his executor. The day after his funeral
(which he had organized from the music and readings down to the chocolate cake
and oysters for the wake) I sat down to write and tell him how wonderfully it had
gone. Ever since, and every now and again, I have written a series of Letters to
Keith that are part travelogue; part whinge about how hard it is to get the right colour
to render acres of Flinders grass; part prayer, I suppose, and how difficult it is to
paint the dying babies and legless men of Ethiopia and Eritrea.

3
For a further reflection on why the work emerged as a series of books see Book 8.
96

When I came to reflect on what was written in this and the subsequent Books I
became aware that it was bristling with so many of the 'themes' and 'essences' that
have emerged as integral to the phenomenon of creating for a visual artist4 - the
necessity of 'play'; the centrality of 'integrity and responsibility'; the discomfort of
'vulnerability', 'helplessness' and 'not knowing'; the 'fear' - and the ordinariness of that
fear; and the joy, delight and pleasure of creating. The problem was how to 'unpack'
some of these themes - or, more properly, to discern if they need to be unpacked at
all. If the presentation of a study is akin to the telling of a story it is unnecessarily
prescriptive (and perhaps rude to the author and to the audience/reader) to unpack in
too much definitive detail. It might be the equivalent of pasting 'Post It' notes on the
face of a painting - 'this bit means this…..' The decision I made is to further discuss
only some of the themes or essences that are structurally essential to the storytelling
framework.

Relationship to Works Produced

How are these writings and paintings to be viewed? What is the relationship
between me, my pen and brush and what they produce? Commonly, when I have
finished a work (written or painted) I have the feeling that they do not belong to me
anymore. I have done my part and now it's up to them to do their work. This sounds
like Zorba the Greek who, when asked what work he did, replied 'I have hands, feet,
head. They do the work. Who the hell am I to choose?' On a more serious note
(although I think Zorba's attitude is deeply and philosophically serious) I have
become aware that I have two modes of art making and neither are mutually
exclusive - an exterior impulse and an interior one. The exterior one is evidenced in
work such as a large drawing I did of the Salvator Rosa ranges west of Injune in
central Queensland. It was one of the most dramatic landscapes I have ever seen and
I wanted to see if I could capture the grandeur of it - to 'get it all in'. I drew in situ

4
The following is a list of some of the 'themes' identified as emerging in Book 1- Enduring, playing,
uncertainty, being led, not knowing, trusting, doubt/certainty, perseverance, corporeality,
experimentation, burden of unknowing, limits of the medium, fear, sameness/difference, rightness,
helplessness, stories, banal/inconsequential, remembering, seeing differently, vulnerability,
97

with a stick and ink - anchoring the succeeding sheets of paper with clumps of dirt
and rocks - and over several meters of large paper I did succeed in 'getting it all in'.5
Later, in a similarly dramatic landscape near Moura (also in central Queensland) I
repeated the exercise to see if I could 'do it again'.6

The 'interior' works tend to happen and I follow their appearance in order to make
sense of something that has puzzled or troubled me. These works are characterized
by images that appear of their own accord - and keep appearing until their meaning
has dawned in me - and then I stop painting them. One of the first instances of this
interior function of my practice came during a visit to Ormiston Gorge in the
Northern Territory. Painting my way up the Gorge, I had come around a corner and
saw a rock formation that resembled Quan Yin (the female embodiment of
compassion in Buddhist spirituality) or the Madonna. At the time the hair on the
back of my neck stood on end and I remember thinking, not only was this a 'holy'
place, but that somehow I was 'different'. I felt as though I was being asked to 'be'
something different - but I had no idea what that difference in being might entail. I
had no idea why, on returning from the Northern Territory, I compulsively drew, for
months on end, not the rock formation in the Gorge but a saddle of hills and a path
that led up into Ormiston Pound and down into the Gorge. The net result, however,
of the compulsive drawing was an insight some months later (when I was
despairingly and heartily sick of drawing the same saddle of hills) that the 'holy'
experience did have a meaning and that meaning would emerge in time. That
understanding was sufficient to still my brush.

It could be said, then, that my work is one of my 'teachers'. Frequently, I must also
confess, patience is sometimes not one of my virtues and I am too harried, too
rushed, and too burdened to listen to what my work is trying to teach me - and so the
agony of incomprehension is prolonged. The relationship between me and my work

interrogation/witnessing, time/reflection, meaning emerging, authorizing/authority, colour/harmony,


stability/instability
5
Mt Warrego West, exhibited in Landscapes of Desire, Brisbane 1998 and in The Earth Which
Breathes the Sun, Townsville, 1999.
6
Twin Peaks exhibited in The Earth Which Breathes the Sun, Townsville, 1999.
98

- teacher/pupil, mentor/guide and so on swaps and changes all the time - but always
is my work (in the triple layered sense) part of me

In an interview with Margaret Throsby (FM Radio National 20 October 2003) war
cinematographer David Brill said of his camera and its role in his work 'Every shot is
a word and every series is like a paragraph…to tell a story'. More beautifully
tellingly, however, was Brill's assessment of his camera 'The camera is just an
extension of what is going through my eyes… my soul'. And the 'magnet' for his
camera? 'Always the people…their dignity….what guns and bombs do to people'.
In a similar vein, German cabaret performer Ute Lemper describes the use of her
voice as 'more like a theatrical instrument' but her philosophy of acting is summed up
by this:

I really think it has to come straight from the guts. I hate overacting and
exterior acting. It has to all come from being. That's why I prefer movie
acting because there you have to be instead of act; otherwise it looks
pathetic…..Truly my approach has always been from the bottom.
24/09/03.p.2).

My pen and brush provide me with a means of 'making sense' of my experiences.


My various works are to be read against The Background to the Study in Chapter 2
that sets out the basic framework - of geography and significant events - with which
to frame the contents of the Books. Additional information relating to specific places
or people mentioned are contained within the footnotes. The necessity for a
background text (albeit necessary in an academic work such as this) highlights, yet
again, the difference between a primitive notion of art (where the stories of the art
are known by all within a group or a community) and the individualized Western one
-where only some, if any, have access to the stories that are relevant to a certain
understanding of the art work. To regain some of the primitive healing function of art
is, in part, why this study is being conducted.
99

Analysis of Themes

When I went to analyze some of the themes that had emerged during this study
(especially as they emerged during the making of the Books) I realized that they fell
into four basic categories. First, a desired state of understanding. Second, our
comportment during the journey towards that understanding. Third, the guidelines
provided by our body to assist in discerning the 'right' path in an exploration, and
fourth, the qualities needed to embark upon the quest for understanding. The Desired
State encompasses such notions as intimacy, being known, meaning, colour,
harmony, stability, being ordinary, vulnerable and open, playful and healed. The
second category deals with our state of being in the journey to what we desire - the
capacities of enduring, perseverance, patience, not knowing, dull-eyed/ unseeing,
wounded, traumatized, doubtful/uncertain, helpless/vulnerable and yet trusting. The
third category explains how we can discern whether we are on the 'right track' to
achieving a desired state - a sense of rightness, a sense of lightness and release of
burdens that, for me at least, manifest themselves in my shoulders, 'tummy' and gut;
the ability to see differently and a capacity to experience desire and pleasure. The
last, fourth, category deals with the qualities we need to employ to reach the desired
state - utilize our sense of integrity and responsibility, sharpen our appreciation of a
'personal sense', solitude, listening, telling stories, reflection, capturing insights,
being puzzled, the subject of grace, playing, experimenting, open -ness, trust, hope
and seeing differently.

Although I have grouped the themes into categories, the boundaries of the categories
are porous and fluid and do not allow a rigid demarcation. The notion of
'helplessness', for example, can hold within itself the further notion of 'blackness',
'despair' - as well as 'yearning', 'hope' and 'trust'. For these reasons, and for those I
have already discussed above in dealing with the language of the Books, I do not
intend to exhaustively discuss every theme that has emerged in this study.
100

Book 1

I wish I could say I start out with a definite plan - an idea of what I want to do.
Sometimes I do. Like the robed women. Ever since I came back from Ethiopia7 they
have been a constant presence for my pen and brush. As the piles of corpses were
for Zoran Music8. He painted them. Then returned to other things like landscapes
and horses and cathedrals. Then they would return. Once again and once more he
would paint them.

He dreamt once that they had disappeared and he was bereft. I think they go when
they have taught us what we need to learn. So the robed women were not a
conscious invitation. But somehow they prepared me yet again. I found myself
buying a very pale umber muslin; then proper white muslin. It's hard to get but little
country shops stock it for people to strain their jam. I have never had the patience to
strain jam but others must. Then when I went into my studio I started rummaging
through my precious hoards of fabric. Beautiful fabrics that have been given to me
or I have collected just because I love beautiful fabric. Beautiful things full stop.
And I find myself reaching for the plain strong honesty of calico. More human than
dead white. More warmth and it can take so much knocking about without fraying
all over the place. A good strong basis. Like some sort of faith I guess. And I start
playing with the fabric. It somehow seems to be leading me until finally the penny
drops and I can see what is emerging in some sort of fashion. But the robed women
had their own language and I wrote it on the fabric with my machine. So still and
silent. Enduring. My hand remembered the precious wonky box that Wardi9 had
given me with its hank of woven silk and a little ball of glittery thread. White. I can't
now remember where I was when I first saw some hanks of cotton (not silk) Addis I
think and my stomach heaved in remembering Wardi and his dying.

7
I traveled to Ethiopia and Eritrea in 1999 to 'document' as a visual artist some of the effects of AIDS
and the aftermath of war.
8
Zoran Music was an artist imprisoned in the concentration camp of Dachau during World War 11
(Peppiatt 1988).
9
Wardi Hazzaz, an art teacher, was my first Ankali client. Ankali was an emotional support program
for people living with AIDS.
101

I couched the glittery thread around the women. Couched - as if sewing could
embrace and keep safe those women in their silent enduring. 'Enduring'. I keep
wondering why that word kept coming back to me. Enduring. To endure. It
somehow reminded me of my father as a prisoner and the paintings and sketches
done in Changi10. The same looking at the camera or brush with so little emotion. I
suppose that would have been a waste of precious energy. To endure, though, is not
the same as stoicism. It is, like calico, a strength to live, survive, get there - in spite
of everything. That is 'to endure' I think.

10
Changi Prison in Singapore where my father was imprisoned for some time before being transferred
to the Burma/Thailand Railway during World War 11.
102

7a. 'THEMES OF COMPASSION/EMPATHY, SAMENESS/DIFFERENCE


AND WITNESSING

Introduction

The background against which these themes will be discussed has to do with notions
of 'person' and 'identity'. Whilst I have rarely thought of myself in terms of having
an identity it is a useful tool with which to describe the multiplicity of roles and
characteristics that go to make a person what they are - and how they are liable to
suffering. Mark C.Taylor's (1993) very simple example of 'Nots' sheds a new light on
this complexity of relationships with the assertion that 'we can only define an identity
in terms of what it is "not'''. The notion of 'mother', for instance, has no meaning
unless it is understood in relation to that which it is 'not' -a child. My image of a
person (with indebtedness to Isaacs 1996) as a complex of different roles, rights and
responsibilities (and capacities for each to be wounded and thus cause suffering) is
one of interdependence and inter-relatedness, but with a central core of 'aloneness'
that will be discussed further below. Many years ago, I heard a phrase that has made
an indelible impression - 'if one person dies so does a part of ourselves because we
are all part of the human race'. It is a sentiment repeated by Lingis (1994) in his
provocative work The Community of Those Who Have Nothing In Common. With
respect to the after effects of AIDS and war it is easier to understand this
interdependence of being human because those suffering - as I wrote on a drawing of
the men in the AIDS ward in Addis Ababa '…were once husbands, lovers, friends
and workers. Now they are just rows and rows of black skeletons'1. If I speak here
mostly of men, it is not to exclude women (who also fight wars and die from AIDS
and poverty) but to paint a picture of the interdependence and inter-relatedness of
suffering where gender (in a sense) becomes less important. For the moment it is the
whole notion of 'person' and 'suffering' that I am seeking to explicate not a hierarchy
of gendered suffering. In Ethiopia and Eritrea, for example, if the
husband/lover/friend becomes sick or dies, not only are their wives and family

1
A man with AIDS, part of a series of works which formed the exhibition 'suffering knows no
geography' exhibited at Warwick Art Gallery and Perc Tucker Regional Gallery and Townsville Art
Society Gallery in 2000.
103

deprived of the pleasure and support they gained from their relationship, but their
community suffers in that the dead cannot tend stock, till the soil, plant crops, and so
their family are likely to starve - and their country is likely to starve as well. As I
wrote on another of the Ethiopian/Eritrean works:

The rains haven't come. Within three months the stock will die and the
people will starve. The men are all at the front.2

In Australia we have not only lost friends, colleagues, sons and daughters and lovers
but a generation of our best (and often youngest) artists to AIDS. With respect to the
after effect of our several wars (as previously outlined in Background to the Study) it
could be said that our society is literally crisscrossed with a silent web of suffering
that affects all generations - my parents' generation, my own because of my
experience of them (and my generation is that of Vietnam) and the next generation
because they are the children of current veterans.

Compassion/Empathy Sameness/Difference

The notions (or theme) of 'empathy' and 'compassion' and 'sameness' and 'difference'
have a great bearing on this study. If I say that I have been wounded or traumatized
by witnessing what does that mean? It is a truism to say that our experiences are
ours alone in that they have a particular colour and texture that we alone can fully
understand (if we can fully understand them at all). 'I know how you feel' is a
commonplace expression of sympathy that sometimes riles me as I am tempted to
reply 'You don't understand how I am feeling until you ask me to tell you'. Having
said that, it is also apparent from reflection on our own experience, of reading an
account of another's trauma to take another example, we commonly feel they could
be talking about ourselves. We identify ourselves in their experience, or, more
properly, we identify ourselves in their account of their experience - in the safe space
of reading and reflection - which is perhaps not the same thing as I will seek to
explain below.

2
'The Rains Haven't Come' from the exhibition 'suffering knows no geography' whose exhibition
details are as above.
104

It is again obvious, in speaking of 'suffering' for example, that which I experienced in


'looking at' or witnessing the suffering of my friends as they died, is not the same as
theirs. I was not dying but I often suffered in being with them - as I have suffered
since in remembering those times. It could be suggested, then, that the 'suffering' is
part of the 'sameness' not what they suffered from nor how they themselves
experienced their suffering. Part of my suffering (as described in Book 6) is also the
realization of my helplessness - there was nothing I could do that would relieve them
of the impost of their dying. My presence with them may help alleviate some of their
suffering - but I could not change the fact that they might continue to suffer and
would die. That realization of the inevitability of helplessness is part of my suffering
and, perhaps, one of the impetus for my creating as an artist.

The following extract from Book 6 describes how some of these tangled webs of
themes - suffering, helplessness, compassion, empathy and so on - entered my work:

'Sometimes one sees or hears something and one's heart breaks and one
doesn't know why'3

But what does it mean to say our heart has broken? Tenderness,
helplessness, sorrow, heart achingly beautiful - it tears some fundamental
fibre of our being

And one's heart breaks - and one doesn't know why. I was going to say I do
know why. It's as though their suffering has become all suffering.

Our hearts break because the are too full of Love?

Chagall's4 Love that inspires paintings?

3
A phrase I read which prompted Book 6 but escaped the academic net of noting references. Suffice,
in this context, to acknowledge that the phrase was not mine.
4
Marc Chagall (c.1991) Russian/French artist who, in a Letter to all those who would visit his
museum in Nice, France, wrote ''The thing that inspires paintings, as well as colour, is Love'.
105

What is this Love? That a tiny dying baby is part of me?5

A part of us all?

But I don't know why this particular dying baby and not the next one.
Perhaps my heart had already broken and hadn't healed enough to break
again so soon.

It's as though their suffering has become all suffering.

Rent open - so we can see more clearly?

Waterfalls rent and fill at the same time

So that is why the waterfalls are appearing again?6

So is that it? We feel as if we are rent apart?

Rent open - so we can 'see' more clearly?

Waterfalls rent and fill at one and the same time. 'Rent and fill' - in some other time
a prosaic and commonplace observation but then it was the vehicle of my
understanding. I finally understood. The rightness of that insight stilled my brush -
for also implicit in the 'rent and fill' is a 'cut and cauterization'. I did not need to paint
the waterfall anymore - for that time. The organic nature of a rightness of
understanding and hence, its meaning, demands a further interrogation. It must be

Chagall's letter made an indelible impression on me and his sentiments have entered my work on
numerous occasions over the past thirteen years or more.
5
A dying baby in Mother Teresa's hospital in Addis Ababa, Ethiopia. A painting of the baby 'The
Blue Baby' formed part of the 'suffering knows no geography' series of works whose exhibition details
I have previously set out.
6
Some of the first instances of waterfalls entering my work form part of the series exhibited as 'Down
the Track. The after effects of AIDS and War' first exhibited as part of a Department of Veterans'
Affairs conference, Powerhouse Museum, Sydney in 1999, and then at Stanthorpe Regional Art
Gallery, Queensland in 2000.
106

checked gently but rigorously because, as already discussed, the notion of 'rightness'
has a moral or ethical dimension - it determines whether an insight gleaned during
the making of an art work is transformative in that it colours the way in which we act
in the future and it throws new light on what we have done in the past (see Sullivan
2003). So I started reflecting back - tracking the development, the journey of this
new understanding through paintings and writing I had done in the past. I realized
that the 'rent and filling' not only applies to my paintings of waterfalls but is also
implicit in my enduring fascination with rent cliffs that I consciously started painting
some 20 years ago.

What does 'rent and fill' mean in the context of a phenomenological exploration of
the notion of creating as a visual artist? It means, I think, that pre-conceived notions,
the safety of the topographical, must be rent open so that a different way of 'seeing' is
allowed to emerge. This different way of seeing describes an understanding of
interconnectedness - the interconnectedness of all things. During those times of
painting when my hand seems to take over (Lloyd Rees speaks of it as though 'the
Spirit behind Nature' has taken hold of his brush7) are times of diffuse boundaries
and a different experience of suspended time. On reflection it seems, for a time at
least, that there is no separation between me and what I seek to paint. But what is it
that I am seeking to paint? Precisely, I think, understanding. And compassion. And
helplessness. And Love.

Is experiencing helplessness, though, the same as painting my experience of it?


From a reflection on Book 6 it is obviously not the same thing. A dying baby may be
many things but a waterfall it is not. The image of that tiny child has frozen itself in
my mind - yet when I go to paint my memory of that experience (which came
unbidden) my hand paints a waterfall. In reaching back into that very particular and
heart-breaking memory and in the painting and writing of it, I have somehow
gathered together fragments of other images, memories to 'teach' me - what? A
deeper appreciation of what it is to be helpless? A different understanding of
acceptance? A deeper understanding of why I paint - to help me make sense of some

7
In Hawley 1993.
107

of the obscenities of AIDS and war? Yet even all these thoughts are problematic
because some like Holocaust scholar, Shoshana Felman titled his interview with the
maker of Shoah, Claude Lauzman 'The Obscenity of Understanding' (in Caruth ed.
1995, p.203). The desire to understand the evil that was the Holocaust has been
described as an evil in itself (Neiman 2002) because to understand is to bring it
within the realm of human comprehension - and the absolute rupture in what was
previously thought imaginable prevents that. Durcharbeitung (ibid.p.212) even goes
so far as to say:

What mankind can do to mankind, on the other hand, is for me as irrelevant


as, for instance the debate on the existence of God. I can do nothing with
this.

Yet still we try to understand - or we try to understand our own response to the
incomprehensible. Poet, Essex Hemphill (speaking of the effect of AIDS) says of his
art:

It's the one thing that I have that can make a difference at least in how I'm
personally approaching this. With my hand, maybe, I can remember a
Donald or a Joe. I can't be sure that the state's going to remember, or their
families are going to really care, or that anyone else will remember, but I
remembered and it meant something to me (in Vaucher 1993,p.180-181)

Sameness and Difference

A Conversation with Gregg Borowitz, Douglas Crimp, and Laura Pinsky in Trauma.
Explorations in Memory (Caruth Ed.1995) entitled "The AIDS Crisis Is Not Over"
also raises some of the themes I am now discussing.. At one point, when the
conversation revolved around the notion of 'empathy' for people living with
HIV/AIDS I was shocked into thought by this reflection of Douglas Crimp (an HIV
Positive activist) referring to a young woman who had contracted the virus through
inadequately sterilized medical instruments:
108

The fact is that Kimberley Bergalis is a person with AIDS who has managed
to achieve a kind of empathetic reaction in someone like Jesse Helms. It
makes you wonder: if that's the way empathy is constructed, is empathy
anything we would even want to strive for? Because it seems that empathy
only gets constructed in relation to sameness, it can't get constructed in
relation to difference.(ibid.p.263 )

'Sameness' and 'difference'. Again, commonly used words but what do they mean in
the context of this study? It begs (and introduces) the question 'Whom am I
writing/painting for?' In the first instance for myself and only for myself - so that I
can make sense of those experiences which trouble and puzzle me. However, my
writing and my paintings will also be exhibited to the general public. What happens
when we read or view the work of another - for surely this appreciation will shape
our perceptions of notions such as 'compassion' and 'empathy'? For my part, as the
author of the works, are they a result of a compassion felt for those who (directly and
indirectly) inspired my works - the people of Ethiopia and Eritrea, my parents, those
who have been damaged by their experiences of war and trauma? During my
theological studies I was much taken with the image of a 'compassionate God' -
compassion translated as 'a turning in the gut, so that one felt the pain of another as if
they were the other - and yet they were not'. Put simply, if I hurt, God hurts as
though he/she were me. I prefer 'compassion' to the notion of 'empathy' which, for
me is slightly more cerebral and distant than compassion, and, perhaps not as
visceral. Does it mean, then, that I feel compassion for those who are the subject of
my works? But the 'subject' of my work - and this study - is my experiences of those
whom I encountered and who have evoked a compassionate response in me. While
these two statements may resemble a 'chicken and egg' dilemma there is an important
distinction to be drawn that I will discuss in greater detail below.

What does this have to do with the creation of a work of art and its reception? In the
light of Crimp's remarks quoted above I again started to reflect on my experiences of
exhibiting my work - both written and painted. The most heart-felt viewer responses
could be described as 'an identification with' - identification with the emotion people
themselves have identified in the work (which might be different from mine). For
109

example, one of the Eritrean series depicts women and children in a refugee camp8.
When viewers have said 'It's just like East Timor' or 'Just like Rwanda' they are not
so much identifying with my experiences in Ethiopia and Eritrea but more my work
has triggered a memory that they classify as similar to their own. They 'know' the
'truth' of the work 'because they have been there'.

It is the same as the manner in which I knew the truth of an American army nurse
trying to explain the import of being with the dying:

That act of helping someone die is more intimate than sex, it is more intimate
than child-birth and once you have done that, you can never be ordinary again
(in McHugh 1993,p.23).

I, too, have struggled to find words to explain the extraordinary intimacy of


accompanying someone as they die. What I hadn't fully comprehended until I read
the words of the American nurse was the radical result of such an intimacy - we are
never the same again. It is as though our essential status as a person has changed in
the same profound way that it changes when we move from 'friend' to 'wife' or
'father', where, in each case, it is from a state of 'not knowing' to 'knowing
differently'. Thus, in the context of a phenomenological study, what happened in my
reading and reflection on my own experience was a deeper, extended appreciation of
the notion of intimacy - except, had I not been there myself, I could only imagine
what it was like - not know.

Could it be said, then, that a response to a work is only possible when (in some form
or another) we have 'been there' ourselves - which is 'sameness'? Yet at another
literal level they are 'different' - firstly, because a viewer's experience is not mine and
mine not theirs - and neither East Timor nor Rwanda are Eritrea. In a sense, then,
'sameness' and 'difference' are like the presence of the colours blue and yellow in that
of green - there in each, but not completely the same.

8
'Women and Children. Refugee Camp' on of the works forming the exhibition 'suffering knows no
geography' whose exhibition details I have previously set out.
110

Many times I have quoted and drawn a response to Levinas's (in Kaplan 1994) 'face
of the other …a face which questions and begs' a response from those who look into
it. Reflecting on the exchanges quoted above, it would seem that 'the face of the
other' can only be recognized - and thus answered - by another who can
read/recognize the plea. Those who have 'been there'? In the conversation quoted
above, Greg Borowitz, an HIV Positive filmmaker and activist, further shocked me
when he said he did not seek to establish a relationship with those who were not HIV
Positive. By implication, it must be deduced, he only sought a relation with
'sameness' - people like himself- HIV Positive. Douglas Crimp (in the same group)
asserts:

I don't think you could ever make a cultural work that functioned as a general
address. But the problem, of course, is that we live in a culture in which it is
assumed that you can, always. And in fact almost every cultural work is
made with that fiction of a general audience in mind. (in Caruth Ed.1995,
p.216)
At first reading these assertions seem to go completely against the demands of a
common humanity - and the principles of education and common social intercourse.
However, it is true, I think, that stories, appeals to empathy or compassion and so on,
will fail unless there are some hooks of sameness that hold them to the surface of
another. The appeals will otherwise fall on deaf ears and blind eyes and,
furthermore, that deafness and blindness may itself be the cause of more traumatic
wounding.

In the context of this new appreciation of the nature of empathy and compassion it
makes a reading of Merleau Ponty's essay on Cézanne more pertinent (in Johnson
Ed.1993, pp.59-75). At one point Merleau Ponty quoted Cézanne as saying 'The
landscape thinks itself in me…and I am its consciousness' (p.67) and Merleau Ponty
goes on to ask 'What does it mean to say 'the landscape thinks itself in me'? I could
not help but think to myself, if Merleau Ponty had himself been a painter he would
not have had to ask that question. He could merely have nodded his head and said
'Yes, I know what you mean'. However, in the context of a study such as this it is not
sufficient to say 'Yes, I know what you mean'. A language must be found to
111

describe, not only that knowing recognition so that others can know it as well, but
how I, as a landscape artist, can say a landscape thinks itself, paints itself in me -
because some of my landscapes are human beings who are suffering. What, for
instance, is that tiny baby painting in me? Something as profoundly simple as the
humanity of its existence? And part of my response to its plea - a painting of a
waterfall? It seems, and is, so pathetically banal and inadequate. Yet perhaps my
redemption may come with the telling of the story of how a dying baby became a
waterfall.
112

7b. 'THEMES' OF BLACKNESS, DESPAIR AND HELPLESSNESS'

How extraordinarily silly I felt as I gathered 'black' pieces together for an extended
discussion on the themes of blackness, despair and helplessness as essential elements
of the phenomenon of creating as a visual artist - for me. As I read each one through
I thought to myself 'These belong in the trauma pile'. It was with some shock that I
realized the 'terrors of creating' pile and the 'trauma' pile were/are one and the same.
Not so long before I had written some notes to myself - 'To say many artists have
experienced times of blackness and despair really means nothing except to say that it
is common. Why is it so difficult sometimes to make art? To live? The subject
matter does not really affect the dread'.

Have I led a traumatized life? I would not have thought or said so. I would have
described my childhood and growing up as normal. For my father, his nightmares
were 'normal' and, although I cannot remember ever being told so, I somehow sensed
that others who had been POW's had nightmares as well so my father's were not
unusual. During the time of my childhood it would have been unusual for any of my
family, friends or neighbours not to have had some personal (usually distressing)
experience of the Second World War - or even of the First Wold War. It was so
ordinary that it has only been comparatively recently that I realized just how much of
my identity is made up of memories of war in some form or another. I started
reflecting back and remembering - not only the blank years following my suicide
attempts (that I can only reconstruct not remember) - but the frenetic pace with
which I seemed to have approached all aspects of my life including my art. I tried to
remember if all my experiences of creating have been characterized by these black
spells - and it suddenly dawned on me that it was the shock of AIDS that started my
'remembering'. Even more particularly, it was only in leaving Sydney after the 'too
many deaths' that I started trying to put it together. Even then I resisted - like the
medic who served in Vietnam who 'for years carried the war inside himself because
he hadn't a way to face the memories he had been through'. Finally, he stopped (in
Kornfield 1994, p28):
113

I began to realize that my mind was gradually yielding up memories so


terrifying, so life-defying, so spiritually eroding that I had ceased to be
consciously aware that I was still carrying them around. I was, in short,
beginning to undergo a profound catharsis by openly facing that which I had
most feared and therefore most strongly suppressed.

As I outlined in the Background to this Study, my experiences of AIDS have been


the best and some of the worst experiences of my life. Until now I had not realized
that another double edged sword was also hidden within those experiences. My
experience of AIDS has given me a lens with which to appreciate (and to partly
understand) the experiences of my father - and my mother - which, until then, I had
no way into understanding. The other edge of the sword has been myself being
thwacked over the head by trauma - and history repeating itself in a double
traumatizing. As already mentioned, it was one of my fellow students who pointed
out that my parents' generation were doubly traumatized by their experiences of the
First World War followed so closely by the Second (Bourke pers.comm.2002). My
double (or triple) 'whammy' has been the aftermath of my parents' experience, the
aftermath of Vietnam and then AIDS. It is probably not surprising, then, that I write
of black patches:

I am so tired of being consumed by sadness. So many of the experiences of


the trenches of World War 1 refer to the mud, oozing slimy mud that, at times,
threatened (and did occasionally) drown them. It’s like that. All I can see
ahead is oozing overwhelming sadness and I don’t know how I am going to
survive. Although I recognize, at the same time, I will not survive unless I go
back. I search the databases, books and articles with a growing sense of
desperation. Where are some experiences that are like mine? I want the
comfort of recognition. I find a sentence here. Sometimes a paragraph. But
nothing that will relieve the impost from my shoulders.

Then, again, at some other time:


114

God I hate this blackness. Glibly I have read that it is common – as I well
know – to have this period of `massive discomfort’ before the new stage1.
Before new growth emerges. I know it has been true in the past. This time it
seems as though the bottom has gone lower still and I am struggling. Sandy2
had to shoot Jiff yesterday. I know it is the sensible thing to do. He fought
with all the other dogs and killed Sandy’s favourite Charlie but my stomach
still heaves at the thought of another death – even a dog. He used to sit
across Sandy’s knees on the bike and he had this dreadful mange which made
him look like a skeleton from hell – or like the skeleton man I saw in Mother
Theresa’s in Addis. A preying mantis skeleton covered in sores being bathed
by a nun in her blue and white habit and a volunteer in a white coat.

Is it true that the subject matter does not really affect the dread of creating? What,
really, is so shocking about the realization that the 'trauma' pile is the same as the
'theme' pile? That I, like Zoran Music3 and Claude Monet4, wanted to paint the
beauty of another's suffering? It is not their suffering, though, that I am painting, is
it? Is it Brill's5 'dignity' that his camera searches for in another human being? Or just
the 'there-ness' of extraordinary shapes, colours and textures that are arranged
differently in the sick and dying to those in the healthy and living when we are
distracted by their aura of liveliness? Is it the stillness of suffering that arrests our
attention? Is that both the attraction and the repulsion we fear in silence? The
silence that calls for a response from us and we do not know what to say? I
remember Mark Taylor's6 story of the Indian sage 'You go out into the Desert to lose
yourself not to find yourself….and in the Desert there is silence….and gradually I
hear the silence speak'.

So, the silence of my parent's suffering - and all the suffering I have witnessed - calls
for some response from me? The fact that all I have to respond with is my art - is

1
Crosby n.p.
2
Sandy is one of my brothers. Jiff and Charlie were two of his sheep dogs.
3
Peppiatt (1988)
4
Lallemand (1994)
5
Little (2003)
6
Taylor (1992,p.270)
115

that part of the blackness? It is certainly part of the helplessness I feel in the face of
their silence.

Reading, I have realized, has many faces for me. It is a source of great pleasure and,
sometimes, it is a desperate search for understanding - and an attempt to 'blank out'
the terrors of solitude. In the times of blackness I seem to read compulsively. One
story I read (and have previously quoted) referred to a Buddhist student who had
been a medic in Vietnam, and did provide me with some comfort. As Jack Kornfield
relates the story in A Path with Heart, A guide Through the Perils and Promises of
Spiritual Life (1994,pp.28-29):

At the retreat I was also plagued by a more current fear, that having released
the inner demons of war I would be unable to control them, that they would
now rule my days as well as my nights, but what I experienced was just the
opposite. The visions of slain friends and dismembered children gradually
gave way to other half remembered scenes from that time and place: the
entrancing, intense beauty of a jungle forest, a thousand shades of green, a
fragrant breeze blowing over beaches so white and dazzling they seemed
carpeted by diamonds.

What also arose at the retreat for the first time was a deep sense of
compassion for my past and present self: compassion for the idealistic, young
would-be physician forced to witness the unspeakable obscenities of which
mankind is capable, and for the haunted veteran who could not let go of
memories he could not acknowledge he carried

Those terrible times of blackness and despair patently affect how I am seen by
others:
… more frighteningly, I must appear to others like my mother’s `hunted
Devils’ I can see it in the eyes of `the curators’. Safe in their jobs. Deciding
what is `appropriate’ for their collections. Not knowing of the existence of
116

the AIDS Quilt7. The largest community arts project in the world. `I haven’t
heard of the Quilt’. A thump in the tummy. How long ago was it that the
Quilt was in the Art Gallery of Queensland? Probably less than 10 years.
This fresh faced young woman is probably not aware of the impact of AIDS.
I felt like an old soldier confronted by a youth saying 'Which war? Do you
mean that one that was on television a few years ago?' Such a feeling of
loneliness – or aloneness. How do I convey what I am trying to say without
frightening people off? It will be better, I think, when I have painted and
written. That gives a `safe distance’ wherein people can appropriate
according to their own space and need. And I am less overburdened and
desperate. Where did I read that modern people are not accustomed – not at
home with suffering? Or was it only Australians? I’ve read so much that it is
an impossible jumble and I can’t remember who said what and where. But
does it matter?

Many times during this study I have welcomed and appropriated the words of others
as they have struggled to comprehend their experiences of trauma:

Hugh Clarke8 was a prisoner of war in Changhi and on the Railway I think.
On his return home he spoke of `an emptiness. A hopeless hope’. That is
what this blackness feels like – emptiness and so devoid of desire and hope.
Or like a blanket of sadness that lies over everything. I suppose there are
many things I can justifiably be sad about. But it as though there is a veil of
sadness and emptiness in front of my eyes and my heart.

I do paint - or more usually draw - in these black times. I do not usually reveal the
details of the black patches - and never until I have 'safely' negotiated them. In a
certain sense these times are like the first beginnings of an art work that require my
total concentration and when I cannot risk being distracted by the opinion of others
as to what the painting might be nor their advice on the best way of getting it there.

7
Australian AIDS Memorial Quilt Project was based on The Names Project Quilt begun in 1985 by
Cleve Jones. Panels from the Australian Quilt formed part of the exhibition 'Don't Leave Me This
Way' Art in the Age of AIDS, National Gallery Canberra,1994.
117

For a number of reasons I do not usually exhibit these works. First, because some of
my demons are my private affair and are only to be shared with others if I feel it is
appropriate and the story may be of some use. Lloyd Rees9, who suffered prolonged
periods of depression throughout his life once remarked that he never exhibited his
black pictures 'because there was enough unhappiness in the world already'. That
might also be one of my reasons as well, but, more pragmatically, I normally have
other work that is more saleable to exhibit and it makes little sense to add to the
despair and desperation by showing work that is less likely to be bought.

The psychology of exhibiting one's work is endlessly fascinating. To enable any real
dialogue - be it between people or between a viewer and an art work - the space of
the dialogue must be hospitable - safe, warm and welcoming. My experiences of
exhibiting have been, for the most part, times of pleasure and excitement - albeit
fraught with some necessary tension and anticipation. There have been occasions
though (immediately prior to 'the stopping') when my exhibitions have not gone well.
When I puzzled over the reasons for these 'black' exhibitions I realized it was my
'state of being' that was as much responsible as any particular works I had on show.
More so, perhaps. My 'blackness' was not conducive to an hospitable space because,
rightly or wrongly, consciously or unconsciously, viewers may have felt manipulated
- impelled to respond to the works (me) in some particular way. A further reason, as
has already been discussed, might also lie in our inability to cope with suffering - and
'blackness' and 'despair' is that.

8
McKernan (2001,p.139)
9
Hawley (1993,p.16).
118

7c. 'THEME' OF CONTEMPLATION AND SOLITUDE

Introduction
The notions of 'contemplation' and that of an 'insight' are intimately but,
paradoxically, related. To contemplate is to 'survey steadily with eyes or mind' 'a
meditative view'. To 'meditate' is to plan mentally or to ponder over, while 'ponder'
is to think over or muse (Little Oxford Dictionary, Fourth Edition). In 'doing'
phenomenology van Manen (1990) advocates applying the totality of ourselves in a
'fullness of thought' directed towards a particular 'theme' or 'essence' of the
phenomenon under exploration. 'Contemplation' for Paul Smith (1974, p.118) creator
of unique book covers, involves bringing 'an experience of the book to mind',
holding it 'before ' his mind 'without thought or analysis' and 'bringing his mind back'
if it wanders from the subject of his contemplation:

..it is the concentration of attention which steers the mind back to the relevant
image, and in this way one keeps in the present moment, crucial to contact
with the creative imagination, which is allied to the dreaming mind…this
discipline is an alternating play between active and passive attention

These several examples all appear to have a common element - a central focus for the
mind and the necessity of bringing our attention back to it should it wander off. I
have always avoided meditation - or being taught meditation to be more precise - but
I believe I excel at the practice of 'pondering' and 'musing'. Or, I do it so frequently
that I cannot conceive of a life without it.

Contrary to what may be implied by a 'fixed' attention, I would suggest, rather, that
insights tend to happen precisely when our minds do 'wander off ' and we are
surprised to find ourselves on a different path and seeing the world differently. In
meditation, contemplation and pondering there is a subtle distinction to be drawn
between an undisciplined wandering off - as when our minds are fraught and
scattered - and a disciplined roaming (which in this case might be a better description
than 'wandering' which carries a certain aimlessness within itself). However
described I believe the image of a fixed and immovable focus belies the function of
119

contemplation which is to assist us to understand a phenomenon more fully. In


phenomenology, as van Manen (1990) stresses repeatedly, it is essential that we keep
returning to the main purpose of the study (why we are doing it in the first place)
which is to understand a phenomenon more deeply so that we can live more fully
aware of the complex inter-relatedness of the 'life world'. There is a 'purposefulness
to all that we do' (van Manen 1990). The same strictures, I believe, ought also be
applied to art making - that is we should not be so focused on what we want to do
that we are less attentive to the 'nudging' of insights.

Almost all artists would agree that insights cannot be programmed. They are gifts
and frequently moments of grace. How we describe the benefactor of such gifts -
God (me); the Spirit behind Nature (Lloyd Rees in Free 1990) the muse (John Olsen
1997) is not really of issue here except to highlight the fact that it is not for us to
command or demand their presence. The element of mystery and grace receives
little attention in much of the literature yet, as previously discussed, the language of
artists is replete with such references - if not to its presence, at least to its absence.
There is another fine line to be drawn between an image of an artist as somehow
'God's typewriter or paintbrush' - as a passive recipient of whatever is sent to them
(which in a certain sense they are) and as actively preparing and 'tilling the soil'
ready for the arrival of an insight (which they are as well). This image of a 'tilled
soil' or a 'primed mind' (implicit in van Manen [1990] and explicit in Smith 1974,
p.117) is an excellent one to aid a comprehension of what happens in contemplation,
pondering, solitude and so on. With what do we prime our minds? Reading, bringing
the totality of our Being to bear on the puzzle at hand - but most essentially it is our
desire to understand that is the key to the 'priming' - the decision to do whatever is
necessary to facilitate our desire. An integral part of the whole endeavour of
understanding is the 'stopping' which allows it to happen1. It is the ceasing to fight
with ourselves. Keith (of Letters to Keith previously mentioned) once reminded me
that 'God wants us to be happy. He wants to give us what we need.' Non-
theologically, human beings, I believe, crave harmony - with themselves, with others
and their 'life world'. I prime my mind by voracious reading (akin to Le Corbusier's

1
William Robinson (Klepac 2000,p.33 ) was quoted as saying 'stopping [teaching] enabled a
transformation to occur'.
120

throwing all the elements of a problem into a pot2) actively thinking and then letting
it all 'cook' (or 'ferment' in the Le Corbusier's recipe). Then I try to clear my mind of
it all and 'just' wait - which is the more passive form of pondering. It is then that
images, thoughts start appearing in my mind - for instance in writing this section on
contemplation I had got 'bogged down' in my thinking. So I stopped, walked outside
and a thought came to me -'the Trinity' -which, as it transpires, was a key link
between all the notions I am now discussing. Such an appearing is termed an
'insight' and it cannot be rationally deduced - that is to say there is no real logic
between the meaning of 'to contemplate' and a notion of 'Trinity'. I could have sat
and thought about contemplation until I was 'blue in the face' (as my mother would
have said) and I would not probably have arrived at a link between the Trinity and
phenomenology.

The Trinity

To background the continuing discussion, it may be as well to here detail some of the
journey the Trinity insight has taken. My mind had been primed by puzzling over
the fact that trios had kept appearing in my work over the past months. I kept
noticing and looking for references to 'trio' and 'the Trinity'3. I had puzzled (and
pondered) over a painting, The Portraiture of War, by one of the Australian war
artists and ex POW, Murray Griffin which depicted a poignant trio of figures
emerging from the River Kwai near the Burma/Thailand Railway - two supporting
one in the middle4. After viewing this painting at the Australian War Memorial in
Canberra my Ethiopian duo of robed women that I had painted for so long became

2
Le Corbusier (Petit 1997 n.p.).
3
Joan Pope (Woodhams & Bishop Eds.1995).
4
There are many aspects of this painting which still puzzle me. In the first instance Griffin was in
Changi for the entire length of his imprisonment but his work changed significantly when the first
prisoners started returning from their time working on the Railway (Griffin 1992,p.68) A second
aspect of the painting continues to trouble me - 'Why did Griffin paint his figures naked?' This
particular work was completed in 1946 after Griffin's return to Australia. The explanations proffered
to me concerning this aspect were- 'It was so hot' or perhaps "with dysentery they would get so sick of
taking their pants off all the time that they left them off''. Neither of these explanations fit with my
reading of the literature - nor my appreciation of my father's generation concern for 'modesty'. None
of Griffin's other work depicts the prisoners as naked - even in the cholera ward where he did paint the
stained sheets. Other war literature describes the most intricate arrangements that soldiers devised to
enable them to cope with continual attacks of dysentery few, if any, of which involved remaining
without trousers.
121

three - and their stance (two supporting one) began to mirror that of Griffin's figures.
This mirroring is one of the reasons that 'enduring' came to be an integral part of my
understanding of all those experiences - mine of the people of Ethiopia, my father as
a POW - and me as I witnessed those living and dying with AIDS. What, however,
did the insight of 'the trinity' add to these understandings - and why did the trios keep
appearing? First, I realized that, apart from a conventional Catholic 'Father, Son and
Holy Spirit', I did not really understand the meaning of 'the Trinity.' I could think of
it in terms of 'I, Thou, and Thine' - or in the language of some ethical discourse -
ourSelf in relation to others and the Other (an unknowable Other). It was only in
returning to the 12th century mystic Hildegard of Bingen, that I could appreciate a
more grounded Trinity as 'spirit, water and blood'. "Clearly these are in one and one
in three"' (Hildegard of Bingen 1985, p.63) - which could be another way of
describing the enterprise of phenomenology as involving descriptions of our lived
experiences (we as blood) in the 'lived world' (water) with the assistance of insights
and inspirations (spirit). The significance of the Trinity in understanding this
relationship is that it (a triangle) is a symbol of perfect symmetry, balance and
harmony where two points continually pivot on the other - with all contained within.
There is no 'outside'. Then, I understood that, not only do I have to care for and
about the dying baby, I cannot leave the image (memory) of it outside me, my skin.
It has to come within for it has become part of me - and I of it. This triune notion
gave me another way of understanding the reality of how my memories are part of
myself - my being.

Insights

Writer Gerald Murnane (Crawford 2002) has a delightful description of how some of
his insights happen - they 'wink' at him from the corners of his vision - they appear to
the side of what his eyes (mind) are focused upon. 'Winking' and 'contemplation'
may appear to be strange bedfellows but if, as I have discussed above, we return to
the central point of a study (to understand more fully and so on), I believe the
surprise implicit in wandering and winking more accurately describes what happens
when we contemplate and how we are when insights happen. Part of the endeavour
of being 'full of thought', 'full of attentiveness' is also being 'full of preparedness' to
122

notice and catch an insight whenever and wherever they appear - even if they 'wink'
at us. Between two people who wink at each other Murnane would say there is an
implied 'secret shared knowledge' (ibid.p.9). If, however, the understanding of the
interconnectedness and inter-relatedness of ourselves with our surrounds is taken
seriously, it must be equally possible that we can be 'winked at' by a rock - or a
waterfall - or a tiny patch of orange fungi as I once was. Painting a tiny orange patch
in a landscape was part of my first experience of having my art teach me -
particularly the sometime disjunction between my heart and my head.5

Solitude

It may be apparent from the amount of concentration, patience and rigorous work
that is implicit in the themes of 'contemplation' and 'insight' as discussed above, that
they are generally performed alone - in solitude. Solitude for me is an essential
element of my life as an artist - as it is for many other artists (Wolseley in Grishin
2003; Martin in Von Dieter Schwarz 1991; Maddock 1992). Wolseley (ibid.p.2-3)
identifies a critical difference between solitude and being with another:

(with another) …the outside reference is another human being, whereas in


solitariness it is the external world of rocks, trees and birds that provide the
texture of reference. It's probable that the mind needs some kind of dialogue
with something external

Frequently, for me, solitude is enriching and enabling - although I can also identify
with Wolseley's' 'five-day-blues'. This is five days out on a painting trip when he
becomes 'very bored - just plain bored' - and it appears that the 'five-day-blues'
immediately precede his 'consciousness' going 'out there' to the rhythms of the
landscape (Grishin 2003, pp.2-3). Always are some periods of solitude necessary.

5
During a retreat I was asked by the spiritual director what I thought about when I painted. 'Nothing'
I replied, 'I just paint'. I was sent out into the paddocks to paint with a verse from the Psalms to think
about while I painted. I decided to paint a slope covered with dry dead leaves as I thought it
accurately represented my future in the church - which I then considered bleak. It was only later when
looking at my painting that I realized I had included a tiny orange fungi that was half hidden in the dry
leaves. It was in that 'learning from my work' that I realized my future may not be as bleak as I had
imagined - there was some colour in the blackness.
123

Sometimes, they are extraordinarily difficult - even in a landscape of stunning


beauty, as was an experience of driving alone between Tibooburra and Noccundra:

It was…. the hardest driving I have ever done. The dirt road was gibbers that
built up in the middle of the road. Their blackness did not reflect the light so
that for my poor little vehicle to retain its undercarriage I had to try and
drive at an angle – straddling the gibbers. My top speed was about 60km
hour through the red sand of Bullo Plains. The remainder was completed
between 10 and 20km hour. I can remember, at one point, sitting in the
gutter of this incredible landscape – the gibbers stretching into infinity it
seemed – and thinking I cannot go on. Perhaps it was a metaphor for many
of my experiences of AIDS – an intense awareness of beauty but a
corresponding awareness that our bodies – our Selves – cannot endure too
much of this level of intensity without cracking and having to construct a new
sense of Self. I cannot now remember how long I sat in the gutter of those
gibbers – long enough to realize I had little choice but to go on or long
enough for the landscape to give me a new strength.

The memory of that drive was rekindled when I read Agnes Martin's assessment of
being an artist:

We do not ever stop because there is no way to stop. No matter what you do
you will not escape. There is no way out. You may as well go ahead with as
little resistance as possible - and eat everything on your plate…..Going on
without resistance or notions is called discipline (Von Dieter Schwarz 1991,
p.70)

For me, solitude is always associated with being in the physical landscape. The time
of my husband's dying was a very intense - sometimes increadibly beautiful -
frequently tiring and draining. After it was over I just needed to paint and I went out
to the Walls of China north west of Balranald:
124

One of my sisters had given me a set of acrylic inks and those were what I
used on that trip. The colours were vibrant and translucent and they seemed
to answer the need I had at that time. It seemed as though I was completely
depleted and the landscape, with its magnificent sand dunes and surreal sand
sculptures, was a mirror of my interior self. As though the landscape was
painting me. I felt both too full of emotion and totally devoid of strength.
Empty and full at one and the same time. As though there were no defenses
between me and the landscape. No filters. No barriers. I have come to
acknowledge that some of my best works emerge from that paradox of empty
fullness. More importantly I realized that my better works emerge when I
have been able to still my head sufficiently for my heart to pick up its brush
as well.

The 'empty and full' preempts the 'rent and fill' that arose in connection with the
waterfall series that was discussed in the previous analysis of the theme of
'blackness'.

Solitude can be more terrifying when one finds oneself in the middle of a 'dry patch' -
as I did when I went on a painting trip to New Zealand after painting the portrait of
the Vietnam Veteran. That painting had trigged a massive upheaval of memories
and, at times, I felt as though I was on the edge of sanity. When I arrived in New
Zealand I found I could not be bothered to paint or draw; I could not be bothered to
find a park for my car and had nearly run out of roads by the time I had come to my
senses and stopped. Where I had stopped was before a wonderful range of hills
outside Nelson opposite the Studio/Gallery of one of New Zealand's most esteemed
potters:

At one stage as we were chatting I must have asked him how he weathered
'dry patches'. 'They are awful' he said, whereupon I burst into tears. The end
result was that he sent me out to paint the hills from his back yard…..and
then (I stopped painting and) read the war literature that I had accumulated
until I reached saturation point.
125

That the paintings I produced in the backyard that day later formed a significant part
of the series Down the Track. The After Effects of AIDS and War is not as relevant
here as understanding the meaning of a 'dry patch'. I had thought a 'dry patch' was
just another common experience of artists - of no particular significance except that
they were extremely uncomfortable and brought one face to face with the reality that
art making is not only concerned with 'what I want to do'. This was precisely the
insight that I gleaned from reading Matthew Fox's interpretation of Hildegard of
Bingen's 'dry patches' - an interpretation that was hers as well (1985). Hildegard
viewed 'drying up' more seriously than a common 'discomfort' - it was a grave sin
because it 'interferes with our exalted vocation to create' (ibid.p.33). What is even
more pertinent to a phenomenological study (with its triune focus of living more
aware in the 'life world'), is, however, the cause to which Hildegard attributed the
'drying up'. Her own 'dry patch' she directly attributed to her 'refusal to write and
share her images' - later called her Illuminations (ibid.p.33). In effect, it could be
said, Hildegard had said 'No' to the invitation her art had presented to her to move
beyond herself into an intimate relationship with others - the community. Again, in
effect, her refusal to share her work could be seen as a denial of the responsibilities
we have, not only to know ourselves but to allow ourselves to be known within a
community.

The terrors and discomfort of solitude have a darker aspect - at least so far as they
apply to my work concerning AIDS and the after effects of war. It is true that
experiences of solitude have often highlighted with a painful clarity the absolute
difference/difficulty/impossibility of breaking into the silence of another's suffering.
In speaking of my despair of sitting in a gutter in remote Australia, I am conscious
that my despair is of quite a different hue to the despair of others that I am seeking to
paint - the suffering of the people of Ethiopia and Eritrea - or that of my father during
his imprisonment. The painful difference is the reality that I could get in my car and
leave.
126

7d. 'THEME' OF A SENSE OF PLACE

Introduction

The constancy of death and funerals in that time of AIDS in Sydney would only find
a parallel in war - or, currently, in Africa, India, Southeast Asia where AIDS is
decimating local populations. For myself, it threw into a sharp (and premature) relief
many of the issues that surround death and dying - the importance of ritual, the
historical importance of cemeteries, and the importance of a 'sense of place' and
'naming' in mourning. During that time I scattered the ashes of friends, colleagues
and clients in the Harbour, helped dig them into gardens and posted some back to
New Zealand. A cremation rather than a burial marked nearly every death. It was not
uncommon for young (and not so young) men to die in Sydney surrounded by their
'gay' and 'AIDS family', but not their biological one. It was us, the AIDS family,
who were largely responsible for funerals and the marking of death and, over time, I
worried about the missing gravestones - a place that marked their presence and their
passing.

'Naming' in phenomenological research is a complex element in the exploration of a


phenomenon. The 'pre' of phenomenological research - the pre-categorization,
theorization and so on - at first thought would appear to preclude naming because to
'name' something is to understand both its form and its function - its meaning -
within a web of lived experience. What seems to be demanded by a
phenomenological study is a suspension - or a delay - in the naming of some aspect
of the phenomenon. Furthermore, as with any other aspect of this study, it is first
necessary to try and identify the puzzle I am trying to unravel. I need ('desire') to
understand why 'a sense of place' for the dead has become so important to me.

Memorials and Art

Whilst I have been worried about a 'sense of place', or, more properly, a place of
mourning, for some years, the worry became more urgent after I attended a seminar
Memorial Art and Architecture at the College of Art, Griffith University, Brisbane in
127

August, 2003. One session was devoted to the design for the new Australian War
Memorial then being constructed in Hyde Park, London. The memorial is
constructed of sloping slabs of Western Australian granite on which are carved the
birthplaces of Australian servicemen and women. Carved over the place names -
Wagga Wagga, Haasts Bluff and so on - are the names of the great battles of the
World Wars - the Somme, Borneo, Milne Bay, Lone Pine and Gallipoli. The only
names on the memorial, however, are those of the current British and Australian
Prime Ministers. The names of the servicemen and women are not part of the
Memorial. During the course of the seminar I found myself almost on the point of
tears and when I got home I wrote this in Book 9 (again an extract, the full text is
found in Appendix 1):

The dead have names.

That's the whole point.

I don't know the place of my father. How could I find him without a name or
a place?

I have clothed the lilies of the field. How much more do I care about you
whose name I know?

You have to go looking (so they say) before you realize what you have lost.
How can you find what you have lost if you don't have a place or a name?

The plants and flowers (endangered) have names - many of them - etched in
stone and glass. Their destruction is etched beautifully but the people have
no names1.

In art, and phenomenological research, a presence is only missed when we are


confronted by an absence. We then go looking for what it is we sense is missing. In

1
Artist Janet Laurence showed a selection of her work at the Seminar Memorial Art and Architecture
including one commissioned piece registering the names of endangered plants.
128

a sermon from Timothy Lutheran Church in Michigan, USA, an un-named pastor


recounted a question posed to Maya Lin, the designer of the Vietnam Memorial in
Washington. Why had the monument so 'gripped the hearts of American people':

"It's the names…The names are the memorial. No edifice or structure can
bring people to mind as powerfully as their names". The power of memorials,
indeed the power of most cemeteries, is the names that represent real human
beings who lived and died (http://www.timothylivonia.com/sermons/2001-
01-07.html).

Cleve Jones, (in Bull Ed.2003, p.325) the founder of the American Names Project
AIDS Quilt, had a similar reaction to the Vietnam Memorial:

I did not expect to be so moved by it. I was influenced by the Quakers, who
are suspicious of war memorials, which they believe tend to glorify war
rather than speak to the horror of it. But I was overwhelmed by the simplicity
of it, of that black mirrorlike wall and the power it had to draw people from
all across America to find a beloved's name and touch it and see their face
reflected in the polished marble and leave mementos

Janet Laurence, one of the designers of the Australian War Memorial, could not
explain the absence of names, except to say 'They did not want any names on it" and
'They had not thought of having a map' to assist people to find 'their' name. Later, I
read that all references to States and different countries of origin had been removed
because '"Aberdeen" would evoke memories for those concerned whether 'their'
Aberdeen was in South Australia or Scotland'
http://www.dva.gov.au/commem/oawg/memorials/london. My distress at the Memorial can be

traced to several factors. First, as already discussed, is the importance of names and
naming in mourning and remembrance. Second, the Memorial gives a false picture of
the demographics of Australian servicemen and women - many of whom (like my
father) were not born in Australia but in countries like Scotland, Greece and Italy.
Last, and perhaps most importantly, the designers of the Memorial appear not to have
understood the importance of 'place' in the stories we tell of each other - stories
129

which give the particular tone and texture that is critical to our sense of identity and
belonging. It matters to me whether Aberdeen is the Aberdeen of Scotland where
many of my father's relatives live, or, the Aberdeen in New South Wales that was
once the answer to a correspondence school examination question that had me
stumped and my father would walk past dropping hints about how we used to drive
past the place when we went to visit my aunt and uncle.

The Place of Cemeteries

In the past I have had an ambivalent attitude towards cemeteries and gravestones and
it has only been in the last ten or fifteen years that I have consciously sought them
out in my fascination with the language of mourning. Cemeteries, too, can lay bare
the historical cost of a country's development. At Silverton, a small former mining
town outside Broken Hill, the cemetery - rusty corrugated iron and long unkempt
grass - speaks of the underbelly of Australian wealth creation symbolized by the
great mulloch heaps of Broken Hill. 'Saved to the memory of….' And the dates of
birth and death reveal the cost of that wealth - death at 28, 25, 32 - and the children -
ten months, three years, two years and so on. In the same way the military
gravestones of El Alemain… Ypres …Gallipoli… reveal the youth of those who died
- 17,18,22,25,19….

Book 8 (the full text is found in Appendix 1).

Over and over and over again - out comes these shapes and forms. I had
thought it was the waterfall again. The 'rent' and 'filling' at one and the same
time. Then a horizon reappeared and it seemed as though the waterfall was
growing into something else

What is this meaning that is struggling to emerge? The image isn't struggling
- it is strong and consistent. It is I (who holds the pen and brush) who cannot
yet understand what I am trying to say.
130

The overburdened hill is now a tourist attraction. The cemetery is


overgrown, choked by weeds and the corrugated iron gravestones are rusting
into forgotten.

At El Alamein the graves are well tendered - as is the memory of that place.
It seems strange that we remember the dead with much cost and appear to
forget the living. And yet I want the cemeteries so I could go and 'loll' on
Keith's grave as the Samoans tend to do. Talk to him instead of having to
write. How ridiculous. Talking to the dead in a 'special place' is just as
ridiculous as writing to them. Yet the need is there to do both.

Funerals

The funeral of my friend Keith Robinson has been the impetus for many of my art
works over the years2. It was also the beginning of my Letters To Keith because, as
he had so carefully planned both the funeral and the wake, I sat under a wisteria vine
the next day to write and report on its success. It has only been now during the
course of this study that I have realized that the music Keith chose for the Service led
us through the stages that we, the living, had to go through in accepting his death.
The service opened with the beautiful bravado of a Brahms concerto, the reception of
his blessing (a Hindu ritual) was accompanied by Indian Sitar music which, like
Gregorian chant, is said to mirror the 'right' rhythm of the body, and, the final
celebration, release and blessing was mirrored by the sublime last trio of Mozart's
Der Rosenkavaliers. Is it that this mourning ritual mirrors the process of creating -
we can start off with great strength of purpose and vision only to realize half way
through the work that we must stop our purposefulness and listen and receive what
the work is trying to achieve in us? Receive its blessing? And in due course give
thanks and celebrate its conclusion?

2
A Series of works Kimino's and White Gums were part of the exhibition Figures From the
Landscape Of Memory, Michel Sourgnes Fine Arts, Brisbane 2000. A selection of the Letters to
Keith are found in Appendix 3.
131

Is it then, an acknowledgement that we are no longer the 'we' that we were prior to
our experience of another that we celebrate in the rituals of funerals - and art making.
There is a continuity with our 'before' selves (and our previous work) but somehow -
from within the discipline of the ritual itself - something new emerges. We are now
encased with another layer of complex experiences - eyes - (and ears) with which to
progress on our way. In a very real sense, as we give thanks for a birth, so we do
with a death because they are merely stages. Now I can understand Keith's story of
the wave and the sea told me so long ago - and which has 'winked' at me on several
occasions since and I have not fully comprehended what it was trying to teach me
until now.

Mourning and Art

In 1999 I completed a series of four black ink drawings You get a poppy, a cross and
a grave – if you’re lucky which was acquired by the Australian War Memorial in
2002. The references within the drawings cross over between war and AIDS.
Loosely it is based on the Wall of Honour at the Australian War Memorial in
Canberra with its white granite walls, brass plaques of names and the scarlet of
poppies that some have placed against some particular name. The cross and the
grave refer both to my preoccupation with the `no graves’ of my friends who died
from AIDS and to a short story written just recently by a friend, Bert Yardley,
entitled The Burial Party (1999). The Burial Party, a story of great Australian
pathos, recalled the need to bury a mate during a lull in the fighting in New Guinea
during the Second World War. The burial occurred some 60 years ago but the story
was only written in 1999. My author friend mentioned that the Army used to carry a
stock of white crosses and when needed they were 'sent up the line'. 'If you’re lucky'
is obviously ambiguous - lucky that there was someone to bury the dead, lucky there
was a cross to mark the spot, and, lucky, sometimes, that they had died and had not
had to endure a life devoid of meaning and pleasure.

As already mentioned, I have had a troubled relationship with cemeteries over the
years. In 1982-83 my husband and I lived in France in a small village near the sites
of some of the great battles of World War One. At one time we had some (male)
132

friends visiting from Australia and a tour of the cemeteries was embarked upon.
Some of the anger that I felt during that tour was not directed so much at the
incredible waste of human life but at the culture in Australia that had produced men
like my husband and our friends. They were typical of their generation - men who
revered their fathers who had fought in World War I and 11, but, they themselves
were too young for the Korean War, too old for Vietnam and were, thus, (in their
own eyes) not 'real men'.

During that tour of gravesites one that affected me most profoundly was an American
cemetery with a chapel/monument built on the line of trenches that was designed to
defend a ridiculously small hill. Inside the monument were the names of 1,400 men
whose bodies had never been recovered from that pimple of a hill and so they had no
graves. That their parents, wives and children would come to France to visit their
grave to find none, just their names as 'still missing' or 'still un-recovered' seemed to
me sadder than the acres of white gravestones. I was even more affected by a small
semi circle of graves in a corner of a paddock not far from where we lived. A
flowering peach tree sheltered the graves of bagpipers from the Gordon Highlander's
Regiment who were playing their Regiment into battle when a shell killed them all.
My father was a Scot and one of the tartans we are entitled to wear is that of the
Gordon Highlanders. Somehow, because they were Scots, wore my father's tartan
and were buried in a paddock, it made their loss more personal and acute. It was only
a few years ago that I did a small painting of that peach tree and semi circle of
graves.

Until the last couple of years I had rarely attended an Anzac Day Service. I do not
know for what reason, but my father had little time for the RSL and rarely went to
RSL Clubs. He went religiously, however, to the annual reunions of his 2/10th
Regiment. The one time I can remember my parents attending an Anzac Day Service
was when I was living in a small country town in western New South Wales and
their visit coincided with Anzac Day. My mother was also an ex-servicewoman and
this particular day both my mother and father marched. I remember watching them
come down the street and bursting into tears. The tears were mixed. I felt as though
I had broken into an intimacy of their youth - and recognized that they shared
133

something that could never really be shared with anyone else - even, or especially,
with their children. My mother's brother was killed in New Guinea, another was a
Rat of Tobruk and never quite the same after the War. One of my mother's sisters
was married to a man who had served in the First World War and 'went funny' when
it rained because he hated mud.

I cannot separate out my feeling about the various wars - World War 1, 11, and
Vietnam - they are too intertwined. I am surprised, now, how very much part of my
identity, my self, they are. I had not realized until so comparatively recently just
how much of 'me' is made up of war memories.

Jennifer McDuff3, in her artists' statement accompanying a series of etchings in the


Australian War Museum writes:

In order to fully comprehend the whole experience, that of trauma, the banal,
the fear, the reality of war as an experience for one man, I have chosen to use
images that related directly to this total experience, one that has spanned
twenty two years (Launceston, 1992).

Her etchings were, as I remember, of her husband's dog tag.

Coming home from Ethiopia and Eritrea in 2000, I trudged down the back of the
'plane to the smoker's section, lifted my head and saw a sea of military uniforms.
The blood drained from my face before I was able to register the pale blue scarves
and berets of UN Peacekeepers. Then a dog tag flopped out of a uniform and my
tummy lurched. Why had I never comprehended before that dog tags are only useful
if one is injured or killed?

3
Artist's statement transcribed from title panel during my visit to Australian War Memorial, Canberra,
2003.
134

7e. THE 'THEME' OF THE RIGHTS AND RESPONSIBILITIES OF


INTIMACY/ART MAKING AND TRAUMA
There are probably few times in one's life that have a genuinely definitive quality
about them, as when one is being 'asked' to move into a different level of 'Being'. A
level which, on later reflection, could be described as being in a different landscape
with more freedom and a quiet excitement of anticipation. I can only recall one or
two such instances when I felt as though I was stepping into completely unknown
territory where I had no idea what was going to happen, nor how I would respond to
whatever was ahead. One of those instances was the occasion of my first exhibition
some twenty-five years ago. It was a group exhibition with my fellow students and
our teacher Graham Thorley in the old Masonic Hall (converted to an art studio) in
Balranald in southwestern New South Wales. So frozen and numb did I feel at the
prospect of my first exhibition that not even the grandeur of the Hay Plains could
penetrate the fear, terror and apprehension that I experienced. Even now I cannot
correctly identify the emotions that I felt - I only knew that my soul would be up on
the wall for all to see - and, perhaps, to walk past. It was, perhaps, my first
experience of a real understanding of 'intimacy' - allowing oneself to be known by
others. And, my first experience of the reciprocity of intimacy - others wanting to
have part of my soul, me, in their buying my work - although I did not fully
comprehend this dimension at that time. In a discussion of an art practice what
place does 'intimacy' have? And what are the rights and responsibilities that might
be inherent in such a notion?

A proper appreciation and understanding of intimacy (as already explored throughout


this study) has direct implications for how both trauma and art making are
conceptualized. As already discussed, one of the key elements of trauma is the
silence that necessarily accompanies 'not being known', and, not 'being able to speak'.
The inability to find the right words, the right audience to listen to our stories in the
right manner means that we have no way - or no satisfactory way, of letting
ourselves be known. The authority of our voice has been diminished - or lost. In
effect, intimacy is denied or experienced in a diminished form.
135

Trust, Surprise, Trauma and Betrayal

I was told a story (or not even a story, a couple of 'snippets' of one) concerning an
adult man who had been abused by a priest in his late adolescence. 'He never talked
to me. He never said he loved me', so the man said, 'he just used me'. A poignant
story that is, perhaps, all too common for those who have suffered abuse. What
struck me, however, was the thought (possibility) that the trauma of abuse might not
always lie so much with the physical act but with the surprise (betrayal) of what one
is entitled to expect from a sexual act (an intimacy of conversation commensurate
with the act) - and the absence of that in what, in fact, happened. In Sydney, during
that time of AIDS, many gay men experienced rejection by their families because of
their sexual orientation, and, then, because they had AIDS. The pain of that rejection
was magnified, I believe, because we, consciously or unconsciously, expect our
family to be different - to be supportive and caring. We have a trust that families
ought to behave in certain ways and our trust (expectation) is sometimes shattered by
the reality we experience. It is, perhaps, that shock of disjunction between what we
expect and what we receive that accounts for much of our pain - not necessarily the
'content' of the rejection.

'Trust' as a notion is of little use unless it is possible to peel back the layers of
language to identify 'What do we mean by saying we have trust in something or
someone?' Is it as simple (and as profoundly difficult) as knowing and allowing
ourselves to be known? Is it possible to say that an abuse of trust (however horrific
the particular circumstance) has the same roots as art in the disjunction between
'sameness' and 'difference' 'surprise' and 'unexpected'?

In a sense this difference between what we expect and what we experience is merely,
I suspect, points along a continuum. Soldiers returning to Australia after the
Vietnam War (and ex POWs from the Second Wold War) trusted that their country
would behave in a certain way - with gratitude for their service, compassion for what
they must have experienced and so on. What they experienced was, in many cases,
the reverse, or, indifference and disdain. On one trip home from Sydney I mentioned
to my family that I would be marching with Ankali, a support group for people living
136

with AIDS, in the coming Mardi Gras Parade. 'I wouldn't say that too loudly if I were
you', responded one of my brothers. A flippant 'joke' but symptomatic of a general
attitude towards my work with people with AIDS - or, gays more specifically. In
that tiny remark I gained a small understanding of what the VietnamVeterans might
have felt on their return. I later read of the Veterans marching after the unveiling of
the Vietnam Memorial when one said, 'We were a raggle taggle mob but as I was on
the outside, people reached over to shake my hand and say "Welcome Home" and I
thought "Everyone needs a parade".' (Hynes 1997) On the night of the Mardi Gras
Parade as we turned into Oxford Street, the crowd was three or four deep and
cheering. Some recognized the Ankali symbol as we passed and called out 'Good on
you' 'You're doing a good job' and I felt proud, and realized much later that I, too,
had had my 'parade'. Later still, I painted that sentiment, Everyone Needs a Parade,
and it now forms part of the 'war series' Down The Track. The After Effects of AIDS
and War.
137

8. EXHIBITION WORKS

Introduction

A constant refrain of phenomenological study is the 'form emerges in the doing.'


This is as true of the form of presentation as it is of the content of the works. The
visual works that comprise the exhibition are largely completed in five media (in
order of 'doing') mono prints on paper, oil and acrylic on canvas, fabric works,
shellacked books on paper and glazed ceramic bowls. It is very different from what I
would consider my normal exhibition format where all works are framed and hung
on walls. The dominant symbol of a desk/table came to me as an inspiration some
months ago and it seemed to answer the needs of this study in a way that was as
multi-layered as the works themselves. First, and most pragmatically, the desk with
its multiple compartments held and contained the books, drawings and writing, not
only physically, but as metaphorically as the conduct of this study has held and
contained me so that I was able to explore my experiences in a supported and
disciplined fashion. Second, as already mentioned on several occasions, thinking
and painting are so intertwined for me that I am not able to classify the two modes as
one being more important than the other. It was only when scanning images for this
study that I realized just how frequently the image of a desk/table and chair has
emerged in my work over so many years. Third, in the same way as the painting of a
waterfall united my love of landscape and my experiences of AIDS (and gave me the
title of this exhibition How a dying baby became a waterfall) so, too, has the image
of a table united some disparate experiences. During my theological studies a table
was both my symbol of 'family' and of 'Church' - with both pointing to the essential
nature of both - the hospitality of sharing a meal (sustenance) and experiences in a
domestic and ordinary way. The image of a table further recalls one of my most
poignant experiences of AIDS - also the subject of a fabric piece Four places and
only one chair - and it is included as a tribute to Tracy Lee, a drag queen, who did so
much for the gay community and who died from AIDS some years ago1. Fourth, this

1
Tracy Lee was a drag queen in Sydney who, even when very ill, continued to work for various AIDS
related charities. As sometimes happened, Tracy Lee's dying came at the same time as many others
and his friends were 'deathed out' and he sometimes felt acutely alone. One day I drove him home to
138

exhibition is overloaded in that many more works are included than would normally
be the case. I have chosen to include so much material because it is a visual
illustration of the magnitude of the task of a phenomenological study - writing, re-
writing, editing, refining, re-painting, uncovering and drawing together of so many
elements and experiences. This exhibition is obviously a final work in that it is the
culmination of this particular program of study. I judged that it was particularly
important, because of the research methodology chosen, that the steps along the way
are revealed as much as possible - so others might come to know 'how it was' and
'what was it like?'

It has already been stated that these works ought not be considered illustrations of
any particular experience. As visual artist, Deborah Walker(1997,p.68) points out:

The foundation and influence for my image making has always arisen from
my profound interest in and understanding of other, parallel worlds.
Literature and poetry always had a powerful, unidentifiable effect on my
feelings and understandings. Yet, my idiosyncratic web of sources cannot be
very easily communicated in relationship to the source of my images

Art Works and Phenomenological Description

To illustrate the interplay between writing and painting, extracts from two
phenomenological descriptions are here placed in dialogue with some of the
paintings and monoprints completed during the course of this study (the full text of
the writings are contained in Appendix 3). They, perhaps more than any other work
in this exhibition, illustrate how the phenomenological endeavour can begin in the
commonplace of every day life, which can in turn inspire a series of works. The first
piece was triggered by the appearance of my principal supervisor after he had
undergone some treatment for incipient skin cancers in mid 2002.

his sparsely furnished house where, in the dining room, was a table exquisitely laid for four with lace
tablecloth, glasses and cutlery - and only one chair.
139

Dull, blue red blotches. Crimson nearly. At first I thought 'Kaposi'2 and I
thought of Keith3 going to the Red Cross to learn how to apply stage make up
to cover up the black splotches that spelled the end. But Dave’s4 red blotches
brought to mind the fever spots of pneumonia – or pneumocystis5 (that was
the type that people with AIDS got. Wardi6 and his dog, Zen. Zen didn’t
have pneumocystis of course but one dreadful day/night Wardi did. I was
supposed to be working. As a dishwasher. At the Media Club in North
Sydney. It was just before Christmas and the restaurant was packed. The
kitchen a chaos. Then you rang. You did not ring often so when you asked if
I could come I could not refuse. You were frightened, you said. Twenty
phone calls later I found a stand in dishwasher and went to you. All night we
changed the sheets as they became sodden. Took temperatures. Bathed
fevered brows as they did in Romantic films. There were no beds and the
nurse said they could do no more had you been in hospital. I don’t think that
was true. But at the time it provided some comfort I suppose.

As dawn came up we drove to the hospital and they put you on a trolley in the
corridor. When I came back the red blotches were staining your face. Trying
to push away the oxygen mask. And your sisters sat well back in the room.
One, the nun, saying the Rosary over and over again. They were frightened
too. For a different reason. `Homosexuality was not holy. It was a sin’. They
could not reconcile their love and their Bible. So they sat well back. Not
touching you. Until you died. A quick convulsion and that was it. I went to
ring your lover who would not come before. He had joined a monastery and
he had made his peace with God so he told me. And if he had come as you
pleaded you would think he would come every time. I went back to the
hospital room. One of the sisters (or cousins it could have been) had rushed
back to your house to get your suit. More becoming I suppose than the

2
Karposi scarmona, a rare form of cancer but common in people suffering from AIDS. It is
characterized by dark purple/black blotches which can be found on any part of the body and which
can progress into swollen, crusted sores.
3
Keith Robinson, my friend, to whom the Letters to Keith are written.
4
My principal supervisor, Associate Professor David Hawke.
5
Pneumocystis a rare form of pneumonia common in people with AIDS.
140

hospital gown open down the back and above your knees. You were so tall.
So they had you dressed in the suit. The rosary beads were twined
decoratively through your hands with a red rose. And your sisters were
patting you and laughing and talking. I left. Walked outside and cried.

Later I sat with the lover at the red brick church funeral. Released from the
protection of God for the dead. Not for the living. And the chasuble prayed
that in heaven my client, my friend would` regain “the full vigor of his
manhood”'. Later still I was coming home late. People piling into church
for Christmas Eve Mass. I should go in I thought. But I might punch the
chasuble priest. So I drove on.

The short, jerky sentences are indicative of how difficult it was to drag these
memories into pen, paper and paint. I decided against re-writing this piece because I
need to remember, in the silences between the raw and the polished, how I, in my
then ignorance of the implications of disease 'signs', did not always respond well.
Perhaps my need for an understanding forgiveness is also etched into the prints.

The second example again crosses over time. Sitting beside the bed of the dying was
an all too common experience during my time in Sydney. This piece was written
some years after I 'left AIDS' and refers more directly to the death of the husband of
a great friend. It, too, illustrates the manner in which even most recent events are
seen through the eyes of memory. It was written very early in the study when I was
trying to comprehend the nature of a phenomenological description and how one
went about writing one. The full text of this piece of writing is contained in
Appendix 3.

What was it like to sit beside the bed of a dying man?

6
My Ankali client who was directly responsible for my going to the Day Centre of people living with
AIDS in Woollahra, Sydney to teach painting and drawing.
141

I sat beside Ian’s7 bed last week as he was dying. I was dreading going to the
hospital. Dreading going back to the smell of death. I got such a shock when
they said he was expected to die within 48 hours that I scraped my car in two
separate car parks that day - something I have never done before.
Sometimes, during those days and early evenings, I would lift off. No not lift
off. Dissolve. Was it Ian who lay there? Or Arthur8? Or Keith? Or Brett?
Or Adrian? It seems obscene to confuse one man with another. It is
mesmerizing. I watch the drips of the saline drip. There is a machine with
digital numbers that keep changing all the time and I don’t know what they
mean. But it doesn’t really matter. Ian is dying and it won’t make any
difference if the drips are out of sequence – or even if they stop. Later we
learn the drip is to help alleviate the symptoms of renal failure. The spasms
which twitch his fingers and his shoulders. Is he in pain? How long do I
wait before I go to the nurses and ask for more drugs? Is it for us who are
watching or for Ian who is twitching that we ask for relief? Does it matter?
Kathy is concerned that we don’t `do it for us’. But now, I say, it can be for
us as well as for Ian. It defies time sitting beside a dying man. The first
evening Kathy was wearing a yellow shirt. A rusty yellow. I wrote a poem
once of sitting beside Adrian. I was wearing a bright yellow jumper. I don’t
know where it is now. Yellow is the colour I love most passionately and even
when I don’t think I will use it I always put out a great blob of it on my
palette. When Adrian finally died about 3 o’clock in the morning I wrote my
fingers shook as I went to light a cigarette and my jumper reeked of the sweet
sweet smell of death.

The following text is a reflection on the phenomenological processes that followed


the initial writing above:

Is this a description of lived experience? I can see the painting of it in my


head and I will have to paint it soon. I think I will ask Kathy to be my model

7
Ian was the husband of my friend Kathy Hunt.
142

– sitting with her head resting on the bed. Is she me or I her? How can I
paint utter weariness – and timelessness – and endurance? And the other
painting that is forming itself is the sweet sweet smell of death. I need to
explore some glazing techniques. The pervasiveness of the smell. I am
reminded of Lloyd Rees9 trying to paint his experience of a bushfire – all red
and gold and black. And he thought it was too raw and covered it with a
milky glaze – and somehow it worked.

Reflection on some particular works – The Drought Paintings

Some of the exhibition works are influenced by our current drought when every time
I looked out the window of my cottage or studio I saw hungry sheep and ground bare
of grass. These images, like all phenomenological descriptions, are multi -layered
and do not fit into a neat linear timeframe. Most of the images were completed
before Christmas 2002 – some during the mono print phase in the middle of that
year. They recall, not only previous droughts that I have experienced all through my
rural life, but, more particularly, an image that was burnt into my mind during a visit
to Mother Teresa’s hospital in Addis Ababa some three years ago. Down the far end
of one vast space I saw a nun in a blue and white sari habit bathing the sores on a
skeletal man who was half crouching on the bed. I think I did do a small sketch of
this image during my travelling but it has returned time and time again in my
painting and in my writing. In some small way it is akin to the situation that existed
for Zoran Music (in Bohm-Duchen 1995, p.52) a survivor of a concentration camp,
in his fascination with the heaps of bodies stacked up in the camp:

(I was) fascinated by these heaps of bodies…because they had a kind of


…tragic beauty. Some of them weren't quite dead, their limbs still moved
and their eyes followed you round, begging for help.

8
Arthur was my husband, Keith Robinson I have already identified, Brett and Adrian were young men
who I met at the Day Centre for people living with AIDS in Sydney. Brett also became my Ankali
client and I was to become the executor for Adrian's Estate..
9
Rees (with Free1987,p.129)
143

For me the boundaries between art, war, AIDS and drought are fluid and permeable
and commonly the images from one trigger memories of the others. Music's piles of
bodies merged with the skeletal man - and these images triggered a memory of piles
of sheep I saw at a sale-yards years ago (because outside the room of the man were
piles of sodden clothes). For the sheep, drought had been followed by cold, driving
rain and they were not strong enough to be trucked. The dead and the nearly dead
were thrown in piles from the semi-trailer. For the destitute and sick (picked up from
the street) in Mother Teresa's in Addis Ababa perhaps they had new clothes. It is 'the
piles' that unite all these images - and 'that shape' - that skeletal, naked shape that in
its absolute vulnerability somehow pleads for a response from us - a response that
links 'us' with 'them'. It was August one year when I was allocated my first Ankali
client. August is an especially poignant time in our family calendar because my
father (Church of Scotland and rarely a churchgoer) always went to our Catholic
Church on the 15th August to say 'Thank you to Mary' 10for letting him out of
Changi11. My client was the same age as my father would have been at that time -
and the same weight - skin and bone. In a way that is still not fully comprehended all
this is somehow connected with the dreaded plastic bags with which one brings home
personal effects from hospitals after the death.

I went to see a play in Sydney many years ago. At NIDA12 I think it was.
About a man who had died of AIDS. All I can remember is that there were
two swings set up on the stage and, of course, after the death there was only
one man, his lover, swinging on the swing. And a collection of plastic bags
and my stomach heaved in recognition. Clearing out the hospital room
meant plastic bags. Plastic bags full of dirty clothes. Drugs, precious things.
But plastic bags nevertheless. Some hospitals now, I believe, have calico
bags that they give to family and friends so they don’t have to use plastic
ones. A considerate gesture. But it is the same thing. The emptiness of
`things’ that now have no owner to give them shape and relevance.

10
The 15th August is the feast of the Assumption - one of the most important dates in the Marian
calendar.
11
Changi Prison, Singapore from where my father was released on 15th August, 1945.
144

Ceramic Bowls

Over the past few years I have sometimes worked with a Brisbane potter, Trevor
Torenbeck where he has thrown some pots that I have then glazed. Some small
bowls formed part of the first showing of the Ethiopian works in the Warwick Art
Gallery in 2000. A friend remarked at the time that they looked like 'alms bowls'.
'Alms' strictly translated is a 'charitable relief of the poor' (The Little Oxford
Dictionary 4th Edition) or a 'donation'. Both could equally apply to the lived
experience of artists, however, it is the paradoxically reciprocal nature of alms and
donation that I would like to 'tease out' with respect to the presence of these ceramic
bowls in this exhibition. As already discussed, art exists to serve a community - and
the opportunity to conduct this type of research might also be considered in the same
fashion - a privilege with a corresponding responsibility. With regard to this study I
find it very difficult to write what 'I want' without also couching it in terms of
'service to others' - which as van Manen (1990), and Sullivan (2003) have also
identified as one of the ultimate goals of research. John Brack (Hawley 1993,p.117)
has it that 'a painting is not finished until it has been exhibited'. There is a caveat,
though, to these sentiments. It would not be true to say I paint for others because I
do not. Nor do I believe that an 'art of truth' can be made for anyone else except the
artist in the first instance - which may explain why so many artists are reluctant to
undertake commissions (Olsen 1997). When I am painting nothing counts except
me, the canvas and the paint

When I have finished, however, I have to let it go for it to do its work. In this letting
go it is akin to the making of a panel for the AIDS Quilt13. The sentiments that
prompt its construction are mine alone, but then I have to present it to the Quilt
where it is sewn into a larger whole and my voice becomes joined with thousands of
others who have experienced the same grief as me. It is then equally important for
me to understand the process and the nature of the total experience so that I can link

12
National Institute for Dramatic Art, Sydney.
13
Australian AIDS Memorial Quilt Project begun by Richard Johnson and Andrew Carter in 1988
after Andrew has seen an unfolding of the American Names Project Quilt in Adlanta in 1987. There
were 44 panels when it was first unfolded in 1988. When I later succeeded Andrew Carter as National
145

mine into a universal context to see if it makes sense. The bowls, then, can be
thought of as an offering of this study back to others.

The glazing of these pots was conducted in late 2003. To the horror of my potter
friend, I glaze with the same speed and abandon as I often paint - sometimes to the
benefit of the pots, sometimes not. One of the essential differences between glazing
pots and painting on a canvas is that it is not so easy to wipe off mistakes in glazing.
In this particular session I started out by painting horizontal bands of wax resist
across all the bowls - consciously reminiscent of the 'horizontal' paintings that had so
irked me during some earlier stages of this study. It was only as I was applying
further layers of glaze that I realized I had resolved the puzzle of the horizontal
paintings, I did not need to paint them any more, and I wished I had not been so
impetuous with the wax. Before the pots have their final firing I have little idea how
they will emerge from the kiln. In whatever pattern the lines of wax take as they
emerge through the glazes they may serve the same function as the 'jerky sentences'
of the phenomenological description with which I began this section - a salutary
reminder that the stages one goes through during the course of a study are often
negotiated by the heart long before the head catches up.

Convenor of the Australian AIDS Quilt Project there were 72 panels and some 500 when I left the
Quilt Project in 1991.
146

9. CONCLUSION

How a Dying Baby Became a Waterfall.

How a Dying Baby Became a Waterfall is the title of my final exhibition, an


inspiration which came to me one graced day when, in the space of but a few hours,
my study (in its fuller implications) all fell into place - not only did I have the
conclusion to my thesis and the title of my exhibition, but I finally understood some
seemingly disparate experiences. I understood that the landscapes of our experience
are made up of panoramas as well as of footprints; some additional dimensions of
helplessness and hope; and that one of the functions of music is that it can carve out a
space so appropriate to the mood of an experience that they are forever linked in
memory. That moment of it all falling into place moved the study from a personal
response to the voice of the world calling on us to say something into a response to
the demand of our common humanity (van Manen 1990). 'Our common humanity' I
remembered was the resolution Underwood (1990) came to in trying to understand
the nature of the grief he felt on the death of some one else's child. We feel grief,
and are entitled to feel grief, simply because we are part of the same human family in
which it is the role of adults to protect and safeguard children. That it is not always
possible to do so is part of our common grief and suffering.

How have I responded to the voice of the world (of which I am a part) for this
speaking must surely be the conclusion to this study?

Australian identity, as is mine, is intimately described by experiences of war from the


Boer War of the nineteenth century until the present day. So much of this study has
been concerned with knowing and yet not knowing. From my earliest childhood I
have been aware of the presence of war - and yet it was not until I was conducting
this study that I fully understood how much memories of war and its aftermath have
shaped me and the way in which I see the world. Then, until mid way through the
study, I had not realized how damaged I had become by my experiences of AIDS
being added to the memories of war - and that is not to say I do not recognize beauty
and value in what has been damaged. After the fire that destroyed our old family
147

home one of the rare pieces found intact was a pottery face somewhat roughly
sculptured at boarding school by my youngest sister. The joy that we all experienced
in finding something whole in the midst of so much that was smashed and burnt was
not lessened when we discovered that its nose had been chipped by the bulldozer
piling up the debris. That the sculpture not only survived the fire but the bulldozer
blade as well somehow added to its precious quality.

One of the directions for future research that follows from the above is the
experience of descendants of veterans and ex POW's which is only just starting to
emerge, for example, in literature and the visual arts (Wajnryb 2001; Amishai-
Maisels 1993). I do not believe we have begun to comprehend the significance of
Lomax's (1995) poignant worry concerning the effects their (ex POW's) 'suppressed
feelings may have had on the psychic development of (their) children'. As Wajnryb
(2001) has remarked it was only when she had children of her own that she became
aware that some of her behaviour (not speaking about some things, for example) was
mirroring that of her survivor parents.

Then, again during the course of this research, I came to a deeper appreciation of the
fact that my after AIDS self (with all its attendant delight, freedom, suffering and
grief) was a permanent and enduring one. In a very real sense there is no cure for
trauma. It would make little difference how much I painted out images that have
haunted my mind for so many years (like the frozen terrible beauty of Zoran Music's
piles of corpses) they would ultimately return. That I have painted them and I have
come to a much greater appreciation of their significance within the threads of my
lived existence and practice is of some comfort - as is the felt comprehension of their
inevitable and enduring presence.

This study has given me a different appreciation of the value and place of obsessions.
Rather than chastizing myself for certain images that repeatedly return to my brush
and pen as somehow indicating a deficit in my practice of being, I have come to
honour and trust them as being 'the voice of the cracks' that are not silence - but I
have to learn to listen to them because the healing, making sense, power of art will
only come from reflection on my own experience. That, perhaps, is the greatest
148

lesson that I have learnt during the course of this study - the critical need to stop so
that we can hear when the silence starts to speak and can become the vehicle for our
transformation and healing.

A re-thinking of the notion of obsession as being a valuable vehicle for a return to


flourishing rather than as always evidence of a pathology is, I believe, another
direction for future research that has emerged from this study. As is the necessity to
revisit 'counseling' in the light of a deeper appreciation of the notion of 'intimacy',
'sameness' and 'difference'. If I am distressed about any aspect of the conclusion to
this study, it is the ramifications of what has emerged with respect to those notions of
'sameness' and 'difference' - and, it appears, our inability to feel a just compassion
and empathy for those whom we do not identify as being the 'same' as ourselves. The
recent Four Corners documentary on the Rwandan massacre Killers
http://hnews.bbc.co.uk/nol/shared/spl/hi/programmes/panorama/transcripts/killers.txt 19/04/04)

emphasized a need for Clendinnen's (1998) 'imaginative engagement' as a way into


understanding the experiences of another. The documentary featured a young
woman, Flora Mukampore, who had survived the Rwandan massacre by feigning
death - and hiding amongst the hundreds of bodies for nearly a month. At first, my
mind glazed over and I could not imagine what it must have been like for that young
woman. As I began to reflect on her story I started to see some tiny cracks where my
imagination might enter - her dead, shell-shocked, remembering eyes I recognized
and remembered seeing many times before. It was, however, when she started
brushing her arms and her clothes - brushing off the memory of crawling maggots -
that I experienced another shock of recognition. I've Always Hated Maggots (2002)
is the title of one of the mono prints of this study and refers not only to my father's
experience as a prisoner of war but to my rural background when, after tending
flyblown sheep, one commonly finds maggots crawling over one's arms and clothes -
a sensation I loathe. While I will never be able to fully understand the suffering of
that young woman, it is possible to find ways into an 'imagining' that can lessen the
perceived 'difference'.

I have been an exhibiting artist for just over twenty five years - and yet it was only in
the 'doing' of this study that I became more fully aware that my artist skin and eyes
149

are not something I can even choose to take off and put on again. I vowed some
years ago that whatever I did in life it had to involve my art - whatever the cost of
that decision might be. I have also said repeatedly that since that time of AIDS in
Sydney it is as though, physically, I have another layer of skin - a skin of memories
that I cannot separate out from mySelf - and when I say it I even pat and stroke the
skin of my arm to demonstrate the physicality of the memories. Yet, had I fully
comprehended the significance of what I was saying, I would not have gone through
the years of worrying whether it was right to paint the hideous sore on Keith's leg.
Now I really know that the eye of an artist does not discriminate in what it finds
beautiful and what it desires to paint. It then follows that experiences of AIDS and
the aftermath of war are not parts of a separate life - they are just different (and often
more difficult) aspects of my lived experience as a visual artist. That deeper,
grounded understanding has again provided some comfort and peace - and yet raised
the awareness of how onerous is the corresponding responsibility to treat of 'horrible
beauty' with care, tenderness and respect. As artists - and researchers - we are
trained to 'see' differently and, we trust, deeply. That ability to see the ordinary in a
myriad of different lights, together with a honed set of technical skills, carries a
certain and peculiar power which, like any other power, must be discharged with a
proper awareness of its presence and with corresponding care.

During my theological studies I was continually chastized for trying to introduce


particular examples of lived experience into theory: 'personal experience was
properly the domain of Pastoral Theology'. Then, and now, I believe there must be a
continual dialogue and cross-fertilization - and correction when necessary - between
both theory and practice. I owe a great debt to phenomenology because it has given
me the way of researching my own experience of practice for which I had long been
looking and where I was not obliged to leave bits of myself out - a way that honoured
my painting as much as my writing, that welcomed my voracious and eclectic
reading and did not require me to sanitize (or edit out) memories, feelings and
emotions. That is not to say I did not value and benefit greatly from my previous
academic work which had used some different methodologies but that, for this time
and this program of study, phenomenology was a perfect fit for me. I now can
150

appreciate more fully that all my previous work - in both academia and art making -
has, in a sense, been preparing me for this current study.

It is difficult to underestimate the importance of a phenomenological approach for


any area of study and research. This importance is, perhaps, more critical for
practitioners who have achieved a certain level of expertise in their chosen field as
one of the less admirable qualities implicit in that expertise is a corresponding
awareness that the ability to hide behind it is easier as well. It is impossible to
conduct a phenomenological study without stopping to reflect on how the tangled
webs of meaning have influenced how we view ourselves, our work and our place in
the world. At the same time, however, the inherent non-judgmental and lyrical
quality of phenomenology has given me (at least) the courage to try and unravel
some of the tangled memories - and/or to sing my way through the darkness.

I have always been very wary and reluctant to excessively analysize my work. This
is due, in part, to the elements of mystery and grace that I have always recognized as
an essential element of my art making (and all art making for that matter) and it
seems to me somewhat pointless to try and manufacture reasons and explanations for
what is, essentially, unknowable. Gao Xingjian (2002, pp.15-16) has cautioned that
'reason and reflection are traps for the artist. You know from your own experience
that when images escape your grasp you fall back on language and your painting gets
irretrievably lost.' On a first reading, a phenomenological study would appear to
contradict all these wise strictures in that reason and reflection are such an essential
part of the research methodology - but they are also a demand of a moral and aware
life - and of the practice of art making. So it must be in the humility that one treats
of insights and discoveries made during the course of a study that one is able to avoid
the trap of arrogance and the beguilement of excessive theorizing. What I feared
(fear) most was that, in researching the mysteries of my art making, I would kill the
very thing I sought to understand. Whether this fear has been justified or not will
only reveal itself in time. All I can say at this time is that I ache to draw.

As this program of study is entering its final stages my family and friends are
beginning to ask 'Where is it leading?' meaning, I think, am I going to get a 'proper
151

job' that pays decent, regular money - and will I be more comfortable to be with -
less burdened, harried and haunted. At this stage I dare not tell them that this time of
research has been a necessary preparation for the next stage of more AIDS. I shall
allow that knowledge to unfold for them like their own phenomenological study.
Phenomenology seeks to lay bare the bones of our lived experience so that we may
come to a deeper and deeper understanding of their meaning and significance - and
so that we may be able to continue the work of our lives in a more aware and just
fashion. We cannot live justly and more consciously when our eyes, ears and hearts
are burdened and haunted by memories of experiences that we do not understand.
Until I had made sense of the rabbit trap memories that I have carried for so long I
could not, in all conscience, go out to people living with AIDS for the simple reason
I would not have been able to see them nor hear the stories they needed to tell.

In a way, that readiness was the deeper meaning of the Ormiston Gorge experience
(described earlier in the Study) and alluded to at the beginning of this conclusion.
The part of that story that I had previously not understood was the significance of the
path - as then I was literally on a path. What now winks at me from beside the path
is that, during that walk, I declined an invitation to climb up a rock to see the
panorama of Ormiston Pound with its surrounding ranges. 'The fascination for
panoramas is a male power thing' I can remember saying (meaning, in truth, I was
too hot and too tired to climb rocks). Now, I realize, it was me that was not ready to
see the panorama. My later explorations into the panoramas of Salvator Rosa and
Moura were leading me, I can now appreciate, into seeing a bigger picture.

My difference of opinion with van Manen (1990) and Smith (1974) with their
apparent fixed focus is then both right and wrong. The straight focus may be the way
we are led into an appreciation of the implications of an understanding- which is
right, but if we remain looking at the ground - it is wrong. In reflecting back on that
painting trip to the Northern Territory I now realize that I was invited to do both -
look at the minute details of footprints in the sand, and later, the panorama. I
accepted the former but not the latter. For me, it is sometimes necessary to
appreciate the meaning of the minutiae before we can even start to comprehend the
grandeur of the universal and global. One of the functions of art (as it has emerged
152

from this study) is that it helps us to confront the overwhelming - and the terrible -
without becoming overwhelmed. It can help make the awful manageable. One of
the functions of phenomenology, as it has emerged with greater clarity in this last
Chapter, is that in seeing the interdependence of the footprints and the panoramas the
light returns to what might have previously been perceived as only darkness - and
that takes time even if it is McDuff's '50 years'.

When I returned from Ethiopia and Eritrea I wrote to Keith telling him that I had
'copped a bit of flack' about the images of legless men and dying babies that some
felt were 'too horrible', 'too confronting' and 'there was nothing beautiful about them'
(Letters to Keith Appendix 2). Then I said 'they had already been killed by AIDS
and war. I can't kill them again by the silence of invisibility'. I, like Levinas (in
Kaplan 1994) carry within mySelf the memory of faces to which I have to answer -
the eyes of my father and my mother, the wounded soldiers and haunted veterans -
and the tiny, cold, dying baby in Addis Ababa. In a sense that need to keep
answering (the responsibilities of intimacy and the coming to know) is akin to the
processes of phenomenology - which are never finished either. On the afternoon of
the opening of my exhibition in Toulouse, one of my French hosts asked me how I
felt about my 'vernissage'. 'Vernissage' was outside the realm of my vocabulary but I
learnt it meant 'the last varnish'. It is a common assumption (by myself as well) that
a painting can be finished - but they are never finished because what we are painting
is our response to life. What happens is that we stop working on one particular area
of our lived experience (a particular painting) and try again to do 'it' better (Gao
Xingjian 2002). In writing this last chapter I have learnt the one critical and essential
difference between art making and a phenomenological study - in painting you can
have a 'vernissage' - in a phenomenological study you cannot. One of the great
strengths of phenomenological research is the awareness that we, in living our lives
in a phenomenological way, always come to a deeper and deeper awareness of the
phenomena we are seeking to understand. The fact that the process is never finished
is, in one sense, exciting, provocative and enticing. From another perspective,
particularly relevant to a study such as this, that endless unfolding can also be
frustrating and can beget a thesis that is difficult to keep internally consistent - but
for which there is necessarily a final full stop. In this last writing I had a 'gut feeling'
153

something was missing. Then I realized it was the flip side to the underbelly of
trauma and suffering - the light that only can be seen in relation to the darkness of
shadows - and vice versa. That I can finally see some light is the full stop of this
thesis - and I believe, its benediction.

The success of an exhibiting artist's life is usually measured in exhibitions, reviews


and red stickers. It is a strange aspect of the phenomenon of creating itself that a
phenomenological study can subvert all those criteria and, in their place, reveal some
very different successful results - a deeper awareness, a wider understanding, a
lightness of things making sense, a renewed clarity of purpose and a very grounded
gentleness or tenderness. Yet, it is those very different results that are needed by
artists to enable them to address the lack of care that Kramer (in Bull Ed.2003) has so
rightly identified as abetting the tragedy of AIDS - and the deaf ears that cannot hear
the voice of silence.
154

10. APPENDICES
APPENDIX 1. Books 1 - 12

Book 1

Notes 25 July 2003


I wish I could say I start out with a definite plan - an idea of what I want to do.
Sometimes I do. Like the robed women. Ever since I came back from Ethiopia1 they
have been a constant presence for my pen and brush. As the piles of corpses were
for Zoran Music2. He painted them. Then returned to other things like landscapes
and horses and cathedrals. Then they would return. Once again and once more he
would paint them.

He dreamt once that they had disappeared and he was bereft. I think they go when
they have taught us what we need to learn. So the robed women were not a
conscious invitation. But somehow they prepared me yet again. I found myself
buying a very pale umber muslin; then proper white muslin. It's hard to get but little
country shops stock it for people to strain their jam. I have never had the patience to
strain jam but others must. Then when I went into my studio I started rummaging
through my precious hoards of fabric. Beautiful fabrics that have been given to me
or I have collected just because I love beautiful fabric. Beautiful things full stop.
And I find myself reaching for the plain strong honesty of calico. More human than
dead white. More warmth and it can take so much knocking about without fraying
all over the place. A good strong basis. Like some sort of faith I guess. And I start
playing with the fabric. It somehow seems to be leading me until finally the penny
drops and I can see what is emerging in some sort of fashion. But the robed women
had their own language and I wrote it on the fabric with my machine. So still and
silent. Enduring. My hand remembered the precious wonky box that Wardi3 had
given me with its hank of woven silk and a little ball of glittery thread. White. I can't

1
I traveled to Ethiopia and Eritrea in 1999 to 'document' as a visual artist some of the effects of AIDS
and the aftermath of war.
2
Zoran Music was an artist imprisoned in the concentration camp of Dachau during World War 11
(Peppiatt 1988).
155

now remember where I was when I first saw some hanks of cotton (not silk) Addis I
think and my stomach heaved in remembering Wardi and his dying.

I couched the glittery thread around the women. Couched - as if sewing could
embrace and keep safe those women in their silent enduring. 'Enduring'. I keep
wondering why that word kept coming back to me. Enduring. To endure. It
somehow reminded me of my father as a prisoner and the paintings and sketches
done in Changi4. The same looking at the camera or brush with so little emotion. I
suppose that would have been a waste of precious energy. To endure, though, is not
the same as stoicism. It is, like calico, a strength to live, survive, get there - in spite
of everything. That is 'to endure' I think.

And then came the blind alleys or the path leading some other way. The captivating
computer router cut the robed women and rummages produced blue, sienna, white
and black tiles for a mosaic face. But it didn't work. It was somehow too forced, too
predictable, too me telling it what to be. So the writing started. I seem to be
incapable of not writing. The shapes did not beg for rounded robes. It is the layers
again and that raw sienna of dry winter grass and the robes of the rural women.
They soak them in butter so that they won't show the dirt. So they become part of the
landscape. The transparency of the paper melted into the glue and the writing came
and disappeared. So many layers and that is what it is - the layers and layers of
memories and after a while all the memories become indeterminate as though they,
too, have forgotten how and when they were written. Or written to form coherent
sentences and proper paragraphs. All that order and sequence has gone like the
writing and the words.

So now it is fragments that lead to the coherence. Sometimes it is the colour like the
white and cream and sienna of Ethiopia, which are also the colours of the dead

3
Wardi Hazzaz, an art teacher, was my first Ankali client. Ankali was an emotional support program
for people living with AIDS.
4
Changi Prison in Singapore where my father was imprisoned for some time before being transferred
to the Burma/Thailand Railway during World War 11.
156

babies of Carnarvon Gorge5. And the orange/sienna is the orange of Ormiston


Gorge6.

Have all these defining times been marked by these colours of the earth? They are
just fragment moments when I say 'yes' even though I don't know what the question is
nor what I am being asked to do. Or be - more to the point. Like leaping off the
mountain that particular day - not knowing if I was up to the task but somehow
trusting I would not be asked to do something beyond my capacity. Or that is what I
believe. Trust. Trust your own integrity Noels7 tells me. Most of the time it is ok.
Then as when the robed women take a different turn doubts set in. But somehow one
has to persevere and see what happens. It's difficult, sometimes, to push ahead not
knowing if it is a self-indulgent wank or doing what has to be done.

But I like the writing disappearing into …what. I wanted to write on the experience.
It is part of my skin but I need to make sense of it all.
And it is my mother as well. As the bleached spiky(haired) nurse lifted her from her
wheelchair for the ordeal of her shower it was Alan Moore's8 drawings of the Nazi
soldiers dancing with the corpses they were to bury. The sheared off no bottom of
'that shape'. She, too, endures the long years of being imprisoned in her own
decision. She said she didn't want to walk. More, I think, she didn't want to live
without Geordie9.

The irresistible desire to cut things up, rearrange, to see what would happen. Even
this 'rubbish' book as Lyndall10 called her tapes brings to mind more images -

5
Carnarvon Gorge in central Queensland has several Aboriginal rock art sites. One panel of
stencilled babies hands was translated to me as meaning 'many dead babies'.
6
Ormiston Gorge, Northern Territory, where, one day painting my way up the Gorge I came around a
corner to see a rock formation that looked like Quan Yin (the female embodiment of compassion in
Buddhist spirituality) or the Madonna. That experience prompted a drawing of the saddle of hills of
Ormiston Pound which I drew compulsively for months afterwards.
7
Noel Rowe, poet and friend.
8
Alan Moore, Australian War Artist who was present at the discovery and release of Belsen
Concentration camp at the end of World War 11.
9
My father.
10
Lyndall Milani, during her PhD seminar in 2003 referred to tapes of her 'musings' as her 'rubbish
tapes'.
157

Drysdale's 11figures from his Northern trip. Dark aboriginal figures - they, too, so
still and silent.

But I love the abstraction of the layered images. Like driving in the fog they relieve
the burden of having to see with clarity. A bit of peace. Driving home yesterday I
was seeing the sparse hills as Music did. After Auschwitz, he said, he had an affinity
for sparse rugged landscapes where everything is reduced to bare bone shapes. Is
that why I love harsh landscapes where there is nowhere to hide? Just simple solid
'thereness'.

This is a long way from how the fabric pieces came into being. And that is how it is -
and why those who have 'been there' are such a relief. There is no need for all the
paragraphs.

Why is it so difficult to write how I make something? I'm tempted to say it just
happens. But I get so cranky when others say 'Well, I just did this' or 'I just
happened to see'. It is not sufficient. But it also true that the 'how' 'just' seems to
follow a logic of its own and beyond a certain point - when it has started to emerge
with its own form and voice - that there is little that I can do other than make sure it
all hangs together and I don't become too afraid to let it go where it needs to go. So
when the robed figure also began to resemble the wounded soldier I remembered the
Judas one-eyed figure in the Ethiopian chapels and made only one eye. And I kept
playing with some pieces of suede. Soft beautiful leather. Perhaps I cut out some
shapes as I often do - but it didn't seem right to cut into it. So I was dropping and
draping these pieces of leather and suddenly it dawned on me that they were the
bundles of rags that were the tiny babies in the hospital in Addis. Which are also the
piles of dead and dying sheep thrown off the truck in Balranald12. And Zoran
Music's piles of corpses and the piles of clothes heaped on the verandah at Mother

11
Russel Drysdale whose first marriage was to a cousin of my father's. His paintings of The Albury
Railway Station, The Mullangendra Pub, Joe formed an integral part of my childhood and were my
first experiences of artworks 'transforming' how ones sees a landscape.
12
Balrandald, a small country town in south western New South Wales where I lived for some years.
During a freezing spell following drought some semi-trailers arrived at the saleyards with many of the
sheep dead or dying.
158

Teresa's13. And somehow it all made sense in the context of the painting but sense
apart from that? I don't know. Does it mean anything apart from the helplessness I
felt standing there holding the cold hand of that beautiful baby? It seems so
inconsequential to refer to that moment -those moments - merely by sewing a
crumpled piece of leather - however beautiful it might be.

And yet I am 'happy' (if I am ever happy with what I have made) with the piece. It
seems the least I can do. And when I show it to others I retell the stories. And
perhaps that is why we make anything at all. So that we can tell the stories.

Papering over the cracks. One single phrase. Is that what all these days and weeks
of playing and experimenting with resin and greaseproof paper have led to?
Papering over the cracks. I had layered some resined paper over a pastel drawing I
had done down in the 'Manar'14 shearing shed when the new bricks of an old
doorway started resembling a giant cross and merged behind the white gums. What
was happening? Then I remembered Keith's kimono (the same shape as a cross) and
driving Noel to Macksville after his funeral and wake. Driving through the forests of
the North Coast I saw Keith dancing in his kimono. 'There is a spiritual quality to
driving at night (or in the dark)' said Noel. The layering of paper didn't work. It
was too much so I chiseled some of it off with a knife until the colour of the bricks
and the cross started to emerge again. I started to weave the drawings of yesterday
and they were too big to weave around the mess of the robed women standing there
looking. So I tore up the emerging bricks - and ran out of paper. I wanted to paper
over the cracks of the weave. Then it dawned on me that the cracks didn't need to be
papered over. They were sufficient unto themselves and didn't need to be smoothed
over.

The black and white drawings happened in a frenzy of remembering. All the bricks
and towers and chapels I have seen over so many years jumble into each other and
my pen can't go quick enough to write them all. Chartres, Ronchamp, Arles, Broken

13
Mother Teresa's Sisters of Charity hospital, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
14
Manar Station, near Braidwood, New South Wales has a stand of white gum trees that have entered
my paintings many times over the past ten years or so.
159

Hill, Milparinka - the burnt chimney of 'Allendale'15. And I wonder why we have a
fascination with ruins and relics? The old brick tower near Broken Hill just stood
there - not even defiantly. Christ, just like those robed women. Just there. Perhaps
it questions me as I question it. So is it 'thereness' is an interrogation as well as a
witness? Shit what does that mean? But the bricks and papering over the cracks
lead to windows, looking out - witnessing yet again. Shit.

I had thought I would like to leave these drawings/ paper in a black drawing book
like the mono prints. But black did nothing for the drawings. So I tried white and
that didn't work either. So I went back to Keith's Chinese paper. I've nearly used up
the whole roll that I've had since he died.

I didn't want the drawings to be 'framed'. They need to be `part of' the paper
because they are part of my skin.

Tom16 calls them 'dancing trees' - when they seem to hover above the horizon. I just
love the lure of these immense plains. That time and space are endless - and so, too,
perhaps am I in some funny sort of way.

I am so tired of drawing those wailing trees so I painted over the top of them with ink
and layered some more paper on top. Perhaps something else will emerge later.

It is quite confronting to have one's duds incorporated even in my 'rubbish book'.


But if David Brill17 can lay himself open to a biography so can I.

I have often wondered why it was (is) that I keep drawing this saddle of hills rather
than the rock formation that made my hair stand on end. Sometimes the meaning
only fully emerges over time. For the moment I love the way this layered paper and

15
Chartres Cathedral, Ronchamp Chapel and Arles are all in France, Broken Hill and Milparinka in
northwestern New South Wales, and 'Allendale' is my old family property west of Warwick in
Queensland. The homestead burnt down in 1986.
16
Tom Spence, an artist living in Stanthorpe, Queensland.
17
Little (2003).
160

paint reminds me of that beautiful light in the Gorge. It seemed to glow with orange
and pink light and it filled me with quiet joy.

A 'rubbish' book - but I don't agree with Lyndal that the beginnings and the musings
are rubbish. So I wanted to make this attempt to map the exploration as much an 'art
construction' as any 'finished' work that may eventuate. I am choosing to write with
pen and ink because this way seems more personal than the computer. Even with my
old typewriter one could see the different pressures on different keys (and where I
had typed so hard the keys had perforated the paper).

The dawning realization of what is implicit - or what is derived from - the process of
making. I was wondering how the different stories - my mother, the babies, the
artists of the camps - how and why they are coming together. Is this how Van
Manen's18 themes are born? Is helplessness an integral part of creating? As I was
helpless before the piles of sheep, the piles of clothes so I am helpless before the
image that is starting to emerge? And yet it is not a paralyzing helplessness. With
the dying sheep - I flipped in my anger and drove to get a rifle to shoot them out of
their misery. But one doesn't shoot dying babies nor even sick and starving ones.
For those I painted and told stories.

The white gum forest of 'Manar'. Like now I had been forced to stop. And then I
started 'seeing' again.

I love drawing and I dreamt last night of drawing on this paper with white ink.
Many things 'come to me' in dreams - and driving. I'm remembering again a mixture
of Lloyd Rees and Zoran Music - and cathedrals. Cathedrals because Rees said if
Aboriginal people could have their Dreamtime, his (because of his European
heritage) were the cathedrals of France19. And Music painted cathedrals when he
wasn't painting the piles of corpses. What brings all these memories together? The
ochre, sienna and white of this layered paper evokes the rock art of Carnarvon - and
hence Aborigines and Rees' linking them both.

18
van Manen (1990)
19
Rees (in Free 1990,pp. 116 -117).
161

Even drawing on this paper is not straightforward. I turn it back to front and upside
down seeking the 'rightness' like playing with the fabrics and paint. I'll be sorry
when this time of making has finished. I missed the obsessiveness of the monoprints
when they had run their course and the images became stale and I was bored with
them. And I am nearly tired now of layering paper and text and wonder what will
come next. Try to keep at bay the thought that there will be no more paintings. The
fear that this is it. I am starting to dream of painting on canvas again so why is there
this fear? Perhaps the fear of nothingness is part of this creating business as well20.
Not the fear of the blank canvas as usually understood as the fear of 'getting it
wrong'. The fear of having nothing to say is much, much worse that the thought of
getting it wrong.

I can't get rid of the fear - but I can keep it at bay by tending to the easy pragmatic
things like learning how to sew this book together; cleaning up my studio; packing
the car (yet again) and pray that the next stage will emerge21.

Does the 'how' encompass these doubts? I feel it must because sometimes it is like a
shameful secret that I have to keep hidden. As an 'artist' I have found it difficult to
say I am bored with my paintings. At Barcaldine22 - and at Burra23 - all I wanted to
do was rest, sleep and read and yet there was this felt compulsion to 'produce' 'art'
works - and 'good' ones. What was I if I couldn't paint?

Bricks, building, papering over the cracks. Brill has papered over his cracks by
working for Ausaid. I am papering by stopping. That sienna is the colour of home.
Papering over the cracks only means the surface is easier to live with. Or does the
papering lend solidity to the foundations - or become foundations themselves. Like
Steve24 hinging the healing Buddha with silk threads mixed with paint. So the

20
See also Agnes Martin, Writings (Von Dieter Schwarz Ed. 1991.pp.67 -74) for a detailed
exploration of the notion of fear.
21
See also Smith (1994.p.118).
22
Barcaldine, central western Queensland where I had gone to paint.
23
Burra, South Australia near 'Paratoo Station' where my father worked as a jackeroo when he first
came from Scotland.
24
Stephen Fahey, an Australian Buddhist monk
162

threads not only enable the opening and the shutting but are part of the ground of the
icon
163

BOOK 2

It's all quite ordinary really. Just keep doing what one needs to do - without
compulsion, drama or angst. This sounds like Keith25.

It is such a relief. A brief period of rest and understanding. Such a blessed relief.

So stopping and not running away has enabled me to learn this all once more. Why
do we forget sometimes?

Three bells. Corbusier26 tapped into the Trinity as well.

Three bells.

The chant ripples like the desert

Like quiet still full breathing. So alive

25
Keith Robinson already mentioned.
164

BOOK 3

The only thing to do is to keep making jackets27

I'm being too polite. I'm not happy with wordless abstraction and yet my landscapes
have become woven pieces because that is what it feels like - fragments scattered
that I am trying to weave into a piece of comprehension. It doesn't happen all at
once. It is like a discovery. Love yet again. We all might say we know what it is like
to Love but each time (or even each day) we have to learn again. So 'enduring' is not
a monochromatic `theme' (although it might be that as well). It, too, is made up of
fragments that have to be pieced together so we can understand the whole. Take
'helplessness'. I wouldn't have thought that 'helplessness' is an essential part of
enduring - except one doesn't have the need to endure unless there are circumstances
which are beyond our power to control or change. It is how we live in the presence
of powerlessness and helplessness that perhaps gives 'endurance' the peculiar
colours it has. Is that why I have been using these colours of the earth? They are
the manifestation of the groundedness that we need to be able to endure - to live - or
to survive. Yet there is a difference between all those as well. To endure, to live, to
survive. Surely one couldn't call it happiness or flourishing? Surely not. I can't
imagine my father calling his experience 'happiness'. Yet I suppose if you survive till
the next day that might constitute happiness - sometimes. It might all come back to
Noel's28 'acceptance' - acceptance, acceptance, impermanence. That's what the
monk told him that time in Bangkok. Acceptance = change what can be changed and
accept what cannot.

26
Le Corbusier's Chapel at Ronchamp, Notre Dame du Haut, has three giant bells at the front of the
Chapel which ring automatically (from memory to coincide with the Angelus - morning, noon and
night). Also automatic is the playing of Gregorian chant.
27
Kenny O'Brien, one of the artists interviewed for Andréa R.Vaucher's Muses from Chaos and Ash.
AIDS, Artists and Art (1993). O'Brien, a designer of exotic leather jackets decided at one point after
his diagnosis that 'the only thing to do was keep making jackets'.
28
Noel Rowe, poet, friend and mentor.
165

BOOK 4

Where do the stairs lead?

The edges are dark

I hadn't thought of the dark winking29 at me

Oh Death where is thy honour? Or should it be 'thine honour'? Why am I writing


about Death again. 'So easy to die,' says Levinas and 'so difficult to live'30. Not
difficult to survive, perhaps, but difficult to live fully and honourably.

A graced time in spite of the blackness. 'Winking' it is such a deliciously wickedly


fun filled thing to do. Saucy and sensual.

My mother sometimes winks.


I love it when my mother winks at the nurses31. It is a glimpse of the woman she once
was - and still is in spite of the wheelchair and such frailty.

I hadn't thought of the dark edges winking at me. I've often thought God must kill
himself laughing at my absurd tantrums of despair. But I hadn't thought he would
wink at me. I like the idea of God winking.

A little gold window - that is what these connections, fragments, inspirations -


changes are -

29
Gerald Murnane (in Crawford 2002) in his Introduction to the work of Philip Hunter speaks of
being 'winked' at by things to the side of his vision.
30
Emmanuel Levinas, Ethics and Infinity, p.21.
31
My mother was a resident of a Nursing Home Hospital for the last 10 years of her life.
166

BOOK 5

Why is the smell of death not an earth colour?32

This paper is not nearly as good as my supermarket rolls33. It is more flimsy and
gutless. Fine for wrapping rissoles but not good for drawing and writing and
painting. But I love working on paper. I do not need to apologize for liking paper
rather than canvas. Olsen 34did too, I suspect. So part of all this is to sort out the
weight of expectations. And sort out why the work seems to be needing to emerge as
books. Books and reading are not only some of the earliest memories - especially of
my mother but an enduring need and passion. Like swimming in warm water -
surrounded, absorbed, uplifted, engrossed. And sometimes a fragment of text sparks
an explosion - and a reconciliation. 'I mourn the needless dead' inhabited my brush
for months (it could almost be years)35. I had forgotten where the caress of the mind
had originally come from until just recently. 'Caress' Levinas says speaks of
absence?36

I haven't yet painted the smell of death. Levinas says art is a vocation37. What is the
nature of a vocation? Certainly it is a question answered. A 'yes' not only to a
specific job - but 'yes' to a life time job - whatever 'form' it takes. It involves
obedience if one is going to do it at all. No picking and choosing which jobs you like
to do along the way. And yet it is not so much the actual work but the orientation
that is the special quality of a vocation. It is saying 'yes' to whatever is asked of me.
The tricky part is working out which of the many jobs is the one that needs to be
done. And trusting that the necessary help will come.

All this I know - and yet I forget and fall into a black hole. I know it will work out in
the end. I know that - so why do the thoughts of death come so unbidden? As though

32
The smell of death has been a constant preoccupation since my time of AIDS in Sydney. Attempts
to paint it have so far been unsuccessful. Some of the mono prints are attempts.
33
Greaseproof paper as opposed to tissue paper.
34
John Olsen
35
Johnston (1985).
36
Levinas (in Hand Ed.1992).
37
Levinas (in Hand 1992,p.151).
167

I have used up all my share of help and assistance. God's help is infinite and
unending - if we ask for it. All through this study I have been confronted by learning
again and again what I would have said I already know. And yet I have not learnt it
through the making before - or not recognized it as such. The knowing has come
from pondering, reflection, pondering long after I have finished the making. Now I
am more aware of it during the making. It is as though I can see blood pumping in
veins instead of blobs emerging when I cut myself.

Perhaps if I write the blackness it will lessen the burden.


The cottonwoods of the Gulf38. I loved those trees - as I loved that immense space.
And I felt held and supported in my work.
The smell of death.

Wright39 says she says the same things but with a different articulation. Is that the
same thing as 'being born with a set of symbols and we spend our whole life trying to
make sense of them'? So this sense of blackness (albeit alleviated by periods of light
and inspiration) is what I am trying to make sense of all the time. Lloyd Rees said he
never painted his periods of depression - 'there was enough blackness in the world'40
so he said.

I don't have this nightmare anymore. Anyway it was more rolling layers of blackness
with suckers underneath the rolls - not sharp41.

Now I draw it it looks like the desert - but it felt as though I was suffocating and I'd
wake up terrified.

Colour is the barometer of my soul. My soul is out of kilter and so are my colours

38
Several paintings of Cottonwood trees in the Gulf of Carpentaria formed part of the exhibition The
Colours of Light and Desire, Ecole superieur d'Agriculture du Purpan, Toulouse, France 1997.
39
Artist, Judith Wright, Silence echoes in the hollow of the hand.n.d.p.18.
40
Rees (in Hawley 1993).
41
A nightmare that I had from the time of my childhood until my late 30's.
168

The yellow butter paper is the wrong colour. For years I have not been able to use
yellow without it slipping into orange. Burnt orange. Now my favourite burnt
sienna is too dark and doesn't have the lightness of raw sienna. Or it needs more
black

I/Thou - it sounds 'acceptable' `to death' when Levinas42 writes about it. It is more
difficult to look into those staring eyes and be given charge of closing them on
death43.

It has taken years to write of that as `I/Thou' - to achieve the distance (which I had
then) to write of the intimacy of that request.

All this because I am going to see the staring eyes of the Requiem exhibition44. It is
almost obscene in its intimacy - the medic and the dying man. I want to look away
but I keep looking.

42
Levinas (1998).
43
My friend Keith asked me to make sure his eyes were closed after he died. He hated those 'staring
eyes' he said.
44
Requiem (Faas & Page 2001).
169

BOOK 6

'Sometimes one sees or hears something and one's heart breaks and one doesn't
know why'

But what does it mean to say our heart has broken? Tenderness, helplessness,
sorrow, heart achingly beautiful - it tears some fundamental fibre of our being

And one's heart breaks - and one doesn't know why. I was going to say I do know
why
It's as though their suffering has become all suffering.

Our hearts break because the are too full of Love? Chagall's45 Love that inspires
paintings?

What is this Love? That a tiny dying baby is part of me?


A part of us all?

But I don't know why this particular dying baby and not the next one. Perhaps my
heart had already broken and hadn't healed enough to break again so soon.

And our hearts break. And our hearts seem to break and we don't know why. It's
like when a child looks at us with open, trusting delight - or safety and we recognize
that there is so little we can do in the greater scheme of things to keep them so safe
and trusting. But there is more, I think. For our hearts to break. Is it a breaking in
of `something else' - a glimpse of what can be. No that is not right either. When
have I felt that my heart might break? Looking at the tiny baby in Addis I felt as
though my heart would break. It was seeing it so beautiful, so perfectly formed (as
most babies are) yet it was blue and it would soon die. Is it the disjunction between
beauty, pathos, sorrow and helplessness? Helplessness again.

45
Marc Chagall (c.1991)
170

A part of us all?

It's as though their suffering has become all suffering.

Rent open - so we can see more clearly?

Waterfalls rent and fill at the same time

So that is why the waterfalls are appearing again?

So is that it? We feel as if we are rent apart?

Rent open - so we can 'see' more clearly?


171

BOOK 7

I'm so tired of this constant shuffling from one place to the next. I yearn for a place
of my own. It sounds like Virginia46 and still it is a relevant and consuming and
aching need.

I'm out of my depth in this milieu. Discordant videos and naked fluorescent tubes47 -
I have enough discordance in my memories without making a video of it all. But I
want to have the raw sienna works sung. Clive48 and a gutsy mezzo-soprano - I can't
even spell that word - yet I would love to hear someone sing my works. Singing with
a merging series of the drawings in the background. The genesis of those works.
With the table of compartments. How strange and yet inevitable that it is ending up
like a Quilt49 unfolding. But my tummy still lurches in bewilderment at the last few
months of the Quilt. I can understand why Dr Kelly50 killed himself. When the
should be support is gone - what is left? The helplessness of trying to fix the
unfixable because the rules are hidden. Hidden rules, hidden stories, hidden
agendas - bumping around against all the hidden till one day it comes - enough is
enough

46
Woolf (1977).
47
A Student exhibition I had visited in 2003.
48
Clive Birch, a tenor with The Song Company, Sydney.
49
Australian AIDS Memorial Quilt Project of which I was National Convenor in 1990-91.
50
British Scientist involved in the search for `weapons of mass destruction' before Second Iraq War in
2003.
172

BOOK 8 (in two volumes)

Over and over and over again - out comes these shapes and forms. I had thought it
was the waterfall again. The 'rent' and 'filling' at one and the same time. Then a
horizon reappeared and it seemed as though the waterfall was growing into
something else. The shapes remind me of the walls of Ormiston Gorge51 - a sacred,
holy place. Later we were told it is a special healing site for Aboriginal women.
Grosse Bluff52 did not feel like that - welcoming and safe. It is interesting that
Wolseley53 felt that too - in spite of the number of drawings he did there. But that
does not solve the problem of the shapes that insist on appearing.

Cloisters - secluded, attached to monastery. Why secluded when it is attached


outside?
Aqueducts
Mullock heaps
Waterfalls
What is this meaning that is struggling to emerge? The image isn't struggling - it is
strong and consistent. It is I (who holds the pen and brush) who cannot yet
understand what I am trying to say.

But for the shapes - they are not a 'problem'. Perhaps if I call them a
'phenomenological puzzle' they may not be so demanding. Or I might be more
patient with the unfolding and emerging.

I keep making things into books. At first not consciously. They just started. Even
now I keep folding drawings and texts into books. It suits this exploration - a
gradual turning over of the pages. A gradual uncovering of the story - page after
page. I 'know' that - yet I want, sometimes, to read the last page first. Even still the

51
Ormiston Gorge, Northern Territory.
52
Grosse Bluff, Northern Territory
53
Artist John Wolseley.
173

journey is exciting. As Keith said 'It's nice not knowing where life will lead me'. A
mystery just like these drawings.

At last. Is Jim's54 'aesthetic delight' (meaning the piece is finished) the same as the
'ah ha' - the recognition that signals comprehension? So that this piece of the puzzle
is finished? I think it must - just as that recognition (delight) does not mean that the
'journey' is at its end. It just means that one is free to continue instead of going
around in circles in one spot.

I thought at first that it was the waterfall emerging again (even though the 'rent' and
'fill' had signaled 'rightness') but a horizon kept appearing over the waterfall and the
waterfall merged into naves? Cloisters? Mullock heaps? I had written on a Broken
Hill drawing that our wealth had come at great cost. Their names (or some of them)
were written in the cemetery at Silverton. 'Saved to the memory' and the years of
birth and death revealed the cost. Twenty-eight. Thirty-two. And children. One
month. Three years. Ten years. They, too, breathed the dust and lacked enough to
keep them alive. The hill had its top mined and the overburden is now the height of
the original except it now contains the bones of the dead.55 Or their spirits.

The overburdened hill is now a tourist attraction. The cemetery is overgrown,


choked by weeds and the corrugated iron gravestones are rusting into forgotten.

At El Alamein56 the graves are well tendered - as is the memory of that place. It
seems strange that we remember the dead with much cost and appear to forget the
living. And yet I want the cemeteries so I could go and 'loll' on Keith's grave as the
Samoans tend to do57. Talk to him instead of having to write. How ridiculous.
Talking to the dead in a 'special place' is just as ridiculous as writing to them. Yet
the need is there to do both.

54
Jim Chapman, a fellow PhD student already mentioned.
55
I completed a series of drawings and paintings ( including the mullock heaps and cemetries) around
Broken Hill in 1996. Some were exhibited Hot Rubber Red Dust, Gallery Agua, Noosaville in 1996.
56
El Alamein, Egypt which I visited in 2000 en route home from Ethiopia and Eritrea.
57
There is a Samoan tradition of burying their dead in graves at the front of their homes.
174

Is that the real value of Murnane's winking - the 'shared secret knowledge' that is
recognized by a silent movement of the eye? 'Shared secret knowledge'. It is what
our parents protect us from (and what I shield from my little nieces) and now I seem
to need to know.

'Epiphanies of the ordinary' (quotes Don Asker58). 'Epiphany' such a beautiful word
and yet it simply means a breaking in of grace. So many times I have experienced
that. The wonderful sense of relief, peace and rightness that is extraordinarily
'ordinary'. I was startled by the claim that our goal should be 'invisibility'. It
seemed the antithesis of what I was seeking to do. To make visible. To be heard. To
be acknowledged. All those things that speak of 'belonging', of being 'ordinary'. And
yet that sense of 'right belonging', of being at peace cannot be awarded by others. It
simply needs to be accepted with grace. Perhaps it is the subterranean logic -
Christ, can one speak of an archeological logic? Wolesley and Hunter59 would seem
to say there is such a thing. Is that what those spirit figures I have been drawing for
years have been trying to teach me? I had thought (if I had given myself time to
think bravely) that they were the earth groaning - crying out from the salt encrusted
dirt. 'No more water' as the irrigation pumps sprayed relentlessly60. Dear God, it's
me and that is why the earth colours. Now, as Murnane had said, the edges winked
at me - seeing the drawn waterfall upside down I realize it is also Keith's kimono and
his mantra 'Don't try so hard to know'61. We used it as his final blessing.

58
Asker (2001)
59
Hunter (1999)
60
Irrigation pumps and sprays near Milduria, Victoria that I witnessed on a painting trip to South
Australia in 2001.
61
Keith Robinson quoting a reading from Krishmurti which was later read at his funeral.
175

BOOK 9

The dead have names.

That's the whole point.

I don't know the place of my father. How could I find him without a name or a
place?

I have clothed the lilies of the field. How much more do I care about you whose
name I know?

You have to go looking (so they say) before you realize what you have lost. How can
you find what you have lost if you don't have a place or a name?

The plants and flowers (endangered) have names - many of them - etched in stone
and glass. Their destruction is etched beautifully but the people have no names62.

Close to tears and I don't know why. I have said it is important to name - and yet (as
I have found with the relentless trees) it leads up the wrong path. Or not the 'right'
path which is, perhaps, not the same thing. It is still important, critical even, to
name properly - with 'rightness'. So why was I close to tears? The work was
beautiful. That cannot be denied. But something was missing. Like the brilliant
scarlet of the surprisingly passionless paintings. Can beautiful work still be
beautiful without conviction and passion?

Some didn't die then - only later. After the nightmares.

Paratoo, Yunta, Glenmorgan, Mountain Creek63. Even that is wrong. It ought to be


'Paratoo', 'Strathbogie', 'Allendale'. Precision matters with a sense of place.

62
References to a presentation given by artist Janet Laurence at a Seminar on Memorial Art and
Architecture, Queensland College of Art Griffith University, Brisbane, 16 August,2003.
176

The list of names (some I recognized - many I recognized because I'd been there)
'Been there'. That was the key for the French works. An idle remark about the
mulga trees of Thargomindah64. A felt sense of belonging in a landscape not his
own. Perhaps that's what was missing this afternoon - a recognition that our hearts
have many homes - places where we do feel 'at home' - even if it is not here.

It is much more complex and layered than can be contained in a wall - however
beautiful it might be. The plants and animals had more layers than the people.

I have carved your name on the palm of my hand. I have called you by name65.

I have called you by name. Your name is etched in my heart.

It is the sad aloneness of feeling I am speaking a different language. Perhaps I am


just tired and too full of unknowing.

63
Paratoo, is a property near Yunta in South Australia where my father was a jackeroo after he arrived
from Scotland. Mountain Creek near Holbrook, New South Wales where we had a property
Strathbogie. Allendale is my former family property near Warwick, Queensland. It was an important
convention for grazing properties to be written between quotation marks, thus 'Strathbogie' not
Strathbogie.
64
A pastel drawing Mulga at Thargomindah that formed part of the exhibition Hot Rubber Red Dust
(1996) that had been reproduced on a postcard. It was seen by a student from the Agricultural
University, Toulouse, France. Students from that University had completed their International
Placements with various members of my family for some years.
65
Isaiah 43:1 -7.
177

BOOK 10, 11, 12 Images but no text


178

APPENDIX 2. Letters to Keith

1. A Letter to Keith After His Funeral

My dearest Keith,

I have to write and tell you about yesterday. I wish you could have been there – but
of course you were there so it’s my need that has to write. It is very difficult to
separate, sometimes, my needs and your needs. Noel1 says that dying is for the living
and I think that is right. I will have to think about that.

You had a full house. Christine sat with your mother and Jimmy2. The kids and I
were strung across the side.

At one stage I thought you were going to be late and I remember your passion for
punctuality and think you would not approve. Jimmy couldn’t find the church it
seemed – and Trish3 hobbled in with her broken toe – a bit forgotten in the rush of
friends. In the face of death there seems to be a need to assert oneself. But the kids
were great. Ian and Adam handed out the daffodils from your white basket. It still
had the Christmas tartan ribbon – a bit incongruous perhaps – but a quaint and
pretty touch. Sarah, Trudi and Heidi dispensed the readings and the maps to Len’s
place4. I underestimated the crowd – or perhaps I could not paint anymore so some
did not get the hand coloured versions.

It was a bit confused at the beginning. People were in the church before you – or the
other way about. Peg5, like my mother and me, busy meeting people and being
social and hospitable – putting them at their ease. A happy coincidence – Brahams
Requiem reached the chorus as you came in so that was nice. It is so beautiful that
music. Les was late so Greg6 did the music.

1
Noel Rowe, my friend and celebrant for Keith's funeral.
2
Christine is Keith's sister. Jimmy his brother.
3
Trish, Jimmy's wife.
4
Christine's children and Len was one of Keith's friends who later hosted his wake.
5
Keith's mother.
6
Greg Smith, Metropolitian Community Church minister.
179

Noel’s introduction was beautiful. He spoke of community – how you had shown us
a new way of being community. There we were Jewish, Buddhist, Christian and none
of the above – in the MCC church with a Catholic priest – with a ceremony with
Hindu symbol and rituals. You would have loved it – but then you arranged it.
Andrew Carter and Perry7 came up and vested Noel with the Day Centre vestments –
Perry smoothing Noel’s hair that had been ruffled in the process. It was a very
moving gesture. I can remember you cutting out Eric8’s green praying hands – the
pink ones I had made you said looked like dolphins. In the greater scheme of things,
I suppose it is only temporarily important whether things are green or pink or
whether they look like hands or fish. I can’t remember your symbol. Did you share
my golden sun on the back? I can’t remember.

Then Les spoke his few words. He mentioned Christine, which was important for her
– and how you had become so close in the last few years. And he spoke of Ankali –
what it was – and me. I wish he hadn’t. I said to him last night I wanted to be in the
background. I get embarrassed when I am singled out – especially as Christa9 as
there and she wasn’t mentioned. But I guess if it helps others to make the decision to
do Ankali or csn or whatever it is worth the discomfort. I admired Les saying that
Ankali people fitted in because often the friends and family could not keep going – it
was too much. Knowing how Les and you had had discussions about leaving you out
of plans and parties – it was a generous and open thing to say.

Then we had Jessye Norman singing the Tomorrow song. When I was typing out the
translation the beauty of the words hit me again, particularly the bit where it says
something like

`and in the silence our eyes will meet and the cloud of happiness will fall over
us’.

7
Andrew Carter, founder of Australian AIDS Memorial Quilt Project. Perry one of the Day Centre
members.
8
A Day Centre member.
180

I remembered your saying to Sue10 and I on Thursday night what nice visitors we
were because we didn’t have to talk. And I remembered your saying to Perry `No,
we didn’t need to be alone. We had such a special bond between us that we didn’t
need to be alone to communicate’. And that is what I think I will miss most of all –
an artist mate who knew what I was thinking and feeling and we didn’t have to use
words.

At one stage both Noel and I thought Greg had put on the wrong tape. It seemed
such a long before the song started. It is a heavy responsibility, you know, making
sure it was all done right – as you wanted.

Anyway, then it was time for the reverencing of the body. I forgot to say that Steve11
had made a special brew of incense – with lavender. It was gorgeous. He lit it
before people came into the church so that they came into a space filled with Brahms
and incense. Noel put some more on and there was this fabulous cloud of smoke – he
got it full in the face, which stuffed the sinus, but still. The first part was sprinkling
with petals. I forgot to say that Sue, Christa, Christine, Michael and I decorated the
casket with the garlands of calendulas and gazanias. We could not get marigolds in
the markets but Steve said it was OK as long as they were the right colours. So you
had this gorgeous mass of golden yellow flowers – with blue iris, white hyacinths,
cornflowers, white daisy and stocks in the middle – with a blue bow for your mother
– because you were a boy! So we had gold, blue, white and then the sprinkling of
mauve sweet pea petals. Some fell off the casket and that looked so pretty – purple
and yellow petals on the floor. Then it was the flame and bells. Steve had taught
Noel how to cross the lamp and ring the bell at the same time – so you had the
wonderful colours of the vestments going around and round the casket with all the
flowers – and two beautiful yellow orange candles at the foot of the casket. At one
stage the vestments nearly dropped in the candle flame – but I prayed that, as they
were silk, they wouldn’t catch too quickly. Then the sitar music came on as people
filed up to warm their hands on your spirit, the camphor lamp, and then glide their

9
One of Keith's Ankali volunteers.
10
One of Keith's friends.
11
Stephen Fahey, an Australian Buddhist monk, a co-celebrant of the service.
181

hands back over their foreheads and heads. Some looked as though they were
pressing you into their eyes and their hair – calming their minds and their eyes. It
was very moving. At the same time we placed our daffodil at your feet – so you could
dance off on a sea of flowers and petals – yellow, gold and purple. But the White
Rabbit only placed his flower – he didn’t warm his hands – so he may need some
help in the fullness of time.

But the most wonderful part was Der Rosenkavaliers. Thank goodness I had gone
around to Les’s last night and checked the music because he hadn’t got quite the
right part. As soon as the music started, I just started to grin – we had made it – it
had gone according to how you wanted it. And it was beyond imagining – heart
achingly beautiful, full, lush, sublime and so sensual. I can remember that night you
played it for me. We had done a heavy night of being waiters and dishwashers.
Cups of tea and our eyes met and could not take in the exquisiteness of those soaring
pieces. I had never heard such piercing music before. I can remember we played
the tapes over and over going to the mountains. `Orgasmic’ you said. `Beyond
orgasmic’ I thought. This is what Heaven must be like. It was an unbelievable
experience. As it finished Noel said the blessing so simply

`Let be his life, and may there be a blessing upon it’12.

You couldn’t do anything else but bow your head in thanks as Lloyd Rees13 would
say.

I couldn’t go out with the crowd. I couldn’t take any more consolation when I didn’t
need to be consoled. You must have dropped your mantle of calm over me. I was so
relieved everything had gone well.

There was a lot of confusion. People seemed reluctant to leave you sitting there. It
was only later that I realized we had created the colours of enlightenment in the
flowers. At one stage I was worried we had made the big bunch of flowers too pink –

12
J.Krishnamurti, Indian Hindu mystic.
13
Lloyd Rees, Australian artist.
182

but you loved pink too. Then I remembered my asking you what colours Lent was for
you. I had to do those banners for the Divine Word Missionaries. You said Lent
seemed to be the same as the stages of enlightenment which went from blue and pink
– which were the stages we had to do – and moved towards yellow and white which
were not our effort – gift, I suppose you could call it. So I painted the Lenten silks
from green to blue to pink to yellow. I don’t think they hung them in the correct
sequence but still. So you had pink flowers, blue flowers, mauve petals and great
sashes of yellow and gold. As it happened – designed? – Michael, Sue, Cate, Karen
and I were in the church as you left – so it was a completion for us. Sue and I took
the flowers up to the Hospice14. Sue’s group – the ones you had played the bassoon
for – had her buy you some flowers that morning. A glorious bunch of spring flowers
– my favourite. The White Rabbit bought golden yellow freesias like the bunch you
gave me a few weeks ago. I always remember you as music, flowers and colour…

The wake was magnificent. Les and Geoff coped and took it all in their stride
wonderfully. When I saw the quail eggs in the salad I just started grinning again.
Then when I saw the cake Robyn15 had made – luscious chocolate swirls – I could
finally relax. I had done my part to make sure it was as you wanted. It was just so
aesthetically pleasing. The crudities were arranged so that the white cauliflower
contrasted with the blanched green peas and orange carrots – just wonderful. And a
mammoth platter of natural oysters – your favourite – on a bed of rich green spinach
leaves. Nothing, my dear, was lacking sparkle and thought. I sorted out the drama
of Trish and her scarf. One of the ironies was that someone there had the scarf she
had returned for `fixing up’. I think she went off happy but who knows? We did the
best we could.

So, little one, it was truly a beautiful experience. I think many people were touched
beyond what they could comprehend and articulate. Me included
With love,
Libby.

14
Sacred Heart Hospice, Darlinghurst, Sydney where Keith died.
15
The caterer whom Keith had commissioned to do the wake some time before his death.
183

2. Letter from the Gulf.

My dearest Keith,

I don’t know why the Psalmists speak so much of shes as in `I have called her out
into the Desert and there I will speak to her heart’ but again it is true. I know that is
not from the Psalms, it is from Hosea or Ezekiel as I well should know. And strictly
speaking you would not call the Gulf the Desert. However, I have just returned from
the Gulf, the Tablelands, Boulia and Windorah16 and in those vast spaces that are so
subtly shimmering with life, I have been caught ( yet again) surprised by colour,
desire and the most peculiar feelings of gentleness and tenderness. Armraynald17 – a
name that one would suspect is most evocative of meaning but in reality is three
bloke’s names joined together – was the first stop past Mt Isa18. My friend the vet
was to pregnancy test thousands of multi-hued, multi-humped Braham cows. While
my formative years were spent with monochromatic Herefords, they did lack the
undoubted drama of humps and exotic pizzles. ( The cows didn’t have pizzles, of
course, but they did have wonderful swinging bits.) While Phil19 offended the dignity
of these young females ( I never did discover how they ascertained the relative
fertility of the bulls – kindly forebearance I suspect) I variously hung precariously
over the roof of Land Cruisers or up safely high railings with paper, paints and
pastels all liberally coated with dust. Phil would harangue me about `my
productivity’ as we drove fifty kilometers home in the dark. But even, or in spite of,
feeble assistance with drafting, branding or whatever, the paintings emerged.
Sometimes slowly as the dawn unravelled over the Gulf and a young boy, stark
naked, chased the chooks; sometimes explosively as I wrestled with the colour of the
Flinders grass – a most frustrating mix of burnt sienna, orange and crimson. I
worried that colour to death until, one day, I gave up. And then it came as it nearly
always does. And one day, this time at Walhollow20 on the Barkley Tablelands, we
were driving through a paddock ( Puzzle Paddock for your information) and there

16
Boulia and Windorah are small towns in far western Queensland , south of the Gulf of Carpentaria.
17
A large cattle property in the Gulf.
18
Mt Isa, far western Queensland and close to the Northern Territory border.
19
Philip Harpham, a vet and a friend of mine.
20
Wallhollow, a cattle property on the Barkley Tablelands, Northern Territory.
184

were the colours of Rome – raw sienna and yellow ochre ant hills – perpendicular
not triangular like the red ones of Cloncurry and Thargomindah21 – and the most
delicate pink grass and pale blue grey salt bushy bushes. Heaven only knows what
their botanical names were but stunningly lovely. Back in the Gulf the dirt is black
and doesn’t reflect the light well so I came a cropper a couple of times playing
centre prop or ( occasionally) the winger bringing in a mob of cattle. But there are
these spindly Cottonwood trees – all bent and leaning in like Drysdale22 figures
towards survival – or their flourishing too, I guess. Days later in the Boulia pub
every time I picked up my brush out would come these cottonwoods – almost
homomorphic as Ainslie23 described them. Do you remember how the same thing
happened with the saddle of hills at Ormiston Gorge? Nearly drove me crazy. I
have to learn to be more patient and wait for the meaning to emerge instead of
shaking them like a dog after a bone – I want it now. But somehow they (the
cottonwoods) have come to symbolize the persistence, trust and faith that is needed
in the face of chancy unpredictability. Like choosing to paint instead of having a
`proper’ job. I reckon you would go down the gurgler quickly if you lost that sense
of respect and awareness of how far you can go in that country.

While my mates sailed on to Brisbane ( on a sea of red wine if the truth be told) I
soldered on to Boulia so weary and overloaded that the landscape was a blur of
orange scarlet hills pierced with black green spinifex. And what, my dear, has
emerged from all this travelling seeing and painting? A welcome sense of right
peace, serenity and excitement that keeps at bay ( for a time) the void. And the
worries of business that assail me as soon as I get home. But last night as I was
playing around with frames and what not the cottonwoods sang and I was stunned
with gratitude. And do you remember a painting I started about 6 years ago? Of
Chartres Cathedral24 where I had gone to sit and rest not long after you had died?
Drusilla Modjeska25 has the most wonderfully accurate description of how I felt at
that time – as if all the surfaces of my self were raw and exposed like a skinned

21
Both towns in far western Queensland - Cloncurry in the north and Thargomindah in the south.
22
Russell Drysdale, Australian painter.
23
Ainslie Yardley, friend and fellow artist.
24
Chartres Cathedral, France.
25
Modjeska (1994).
185

rabbit hanging in a butcher shop. The beautiful blue light of the Cathedral was like
a balm and I said to Noel it was like being in the womb of God. Well that painting
which somehow I couldn’t finish then is, I think, nearing a healing completion and
I’ll probably have to call it The Cathedral of the Gulf26. Somehow the humps of the
Armraynald cattle have merged with the light of the nave – one of those gift
inspirations. Are you responsible? If so my gratitude and love. It is nice to have a
sense of completion so one can be ready for the next mystery and task.

I realize I haven’t told you about Boulia and Windorah – where I am to have an
exhibition next year. I am too tired to do them justice at the moment but the drive
from Boulia to Winton was one of the most surreal - a heavy fog all across the plains
- like the snow haze as I left Paris for Bangkok and where later the spires of Paris
merged with the temples of that lovely ratty city. I remember driving from Hay to
Balranald early one winter morning – a similar fog across saltbush plains – and
Motzart’s Cosi van Tuti came on the radio. A breaking in of Grace I think they call
it. Boulia was a bit like that. Driving in the fog one is held gently and relieved,
temporarily, of the burden of seeing vastness with clarity. So, my dear, keep looking
after me. Noel has said he would like to come with me on the next trip. He will sit in
the pub and write while I paint. Kerry nearly fainted at the prospect of a drive to
Windorah but I think he should come and see the sandhills where I nearly used up all
the orange ink he so thoughtfully sent me. I love the sensual simplicity of sandhills
with a fearful passion and these were unbelievably beautiful.27

I think some of the paintings they begat were a bit unbelievable as well but not all
responses can be ordered, polite and acceptable as we both well know.

Keep well.
With all love and thanks
Libby.

26
Cathedral of the Gulf, exhibited Art in the Woolshed, Pikedale,1996.
27
A series of sand dune paintings were exhibited Art in the Woolshed, Pikedale, 1996.
186

3. Letter After Ethiopia and Eritrea

My dearest Keith,

Well you may ask what is this black bit above? It is a photocopy of a torn up
drawing but it is the seed for a series of prints and etchings that I want to do once
this exhibition28 in January is over. If I can learn how to make sushi I’m sure I can
learn how to do a solarplate etching. As you know the trip to Ethiopia and Eritrea
went well. But it was tough and I have found painting out the images even tougher.
The men dying of AIDS in Mother Teresa’s29 hospital have proven to be the hardest
(if I thought breaking off to go shearing was some longed for light entertainment that
is some indication). Rows and rows of black skeletons. How many years have I had
these images in my head? Now what I am painting is so multilayered – not only
Addis Ababa, but the hospice at St Vinnies, Ward 17 South, the Prince of Wales30
and I still can’t remember the name of the hospital at Camperdown where Andrew
Carter used to go sometimes. More private for suffering I think. Isak Dinesen said `
all sorrows can be borne if you put them into a story or tell a story about them’.
Most of the time I think that is true but I nearly spun out in those huge dark rooms in
Addis. I had bought a bag of lollies for the kids. It was the feast of the Assumption
and St Mary is very big deal in Ethiopia. So the most poor and destitute were
singing and dancing on the verandahs and inside vast rooms (where, at night, they
push the beds together and more sleep on the floor) rows and rows and rows of men
dying of AIDS. For political purposes, I feel, they divide them into diarrhea, TB and
AIDS – but they are all the same. I can’t remember many women. Perhaps they
were in another hospital. They die younger I was told – weakened by childbirth. My
bag of lollies was pathetically inadequate but for brief instants, faces lit up with
pleasure and momentary relief from suffering. Then we went across the road to
another compound. To the babies and children. This time rows and rows of cots
with bundles – sometimes two and three in a cot but they were tiny so they had plenty

28
Suffering knows no geography, Warwick Regional Art Gallery, where most of the Ethiopian and
Eritrean works were exhibited in 2001, and then at Perc Tucker Regional Gallery and Townsville Art
Society Gallery later in 2001.
29
Mother Teresa's Hospital, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
30
All hospitals in Sydney that specialized in the care of people living with AIDS.
187

of room. These are babies that have been abandoned by their mothers ( too sick or
too poor to care for them). The police pick them up in the streets and bring them to
the sisters. At that time of the year it was raining and cold and for some their rescue
came too late. They got too cold and chilled and will die. Some have `quick, quick
AIDS’ and they, too, will die. Before their first birthday. One baby was translucent
blue `something was not quite right’ with it and it, too, will die soon. It was another
of those times when I felt if I started crying I would never stop so I could just hold its
cold tiny hand. But still there was more. Children, grossly deformed, playing with a
team of volunteers from all over the world it seemed. Some have said my paintings
from that visit are `horrible’ `too confronting’ `too discomforting’ `there is no beauty
to be found in them’. I’ll have to have another go. There is beauty – the beauty of
the presence of a human being – even if their faces are ravaged landscapes of light
and shadow cast so gauntly. They were once vigorous young men – father, lovers
and workers – as you were once a beautiful young musician, artist and poet. It’s
hard to remember sometimes and even harder to look into those faces and to know,
for them at least, there is nothing I can do.

It wasn’t all AIDS, of course, although one of the sisters31 said she thought AIDS was
a bigger problem than both war and poverty. War and poverty are not pretty but all
the time I was shocked out of being overwhelmed by the beauty of the people – dark
skinned, flashing smiles and a quality of dignity and resilience that, at times, put a
stroppy, impatient, itinerant Australian artist to shame.

How can I tell even you all in a letter? Since I got back several people want `a
paragraph’ – for a magazine, a journal, a press release and I can hardly write a
coherent sentence much less a paragraph. So I’ll have to content myself with
sketches – singularly appropriate as I can’t even properly describe the works that
have emerged. Are they paintings, drawings, sketches? And why does it matter so
much? Thank God for George Gittoes. Providentially he has two exhibitions on in
Brisbane at the moment. Pages from his sketch book – images and text interwoven (
which handily answers the comment during my seminar about the written word being

31
Daughters of Charity, a Catholic order of nuns that ran hospitals, schools, and teacher education
colleges amongst other things.
188

privileged in ethical discourses). Huge canvases and small ones. But I loved the
drawings/sketches the best. Precious little room to hide in those and it is comforting
to know that even an artist of his calibre is stumped on occasions to adequately
convey suffering, anger and despair ( yet he does all that so well). I would love a
drawing he did in Somalia – of a starving child. Is it awful to say that it is not for the
image of the child that I would like the drawing but for a small part of the text `I’m
afraid I have given up on it (the child) is beyond my art’.

So you can see it has not been easy. I didn’t expect it to be but I was surprised by
how many times I felt as though I was struggling under a blanket of such blackness.
But the paintings are not black – they are umber and raw sienna and white. Me, who
preaches to my occasional students to leave white off their palettes, have used tubes
and tubes and tubes of it since I got back. It’s the shawls of the women – wrapped
figures that are irresistibly aesthetic and elegant. And how they and the sisters in the
clinic keep their shawls and habits so white is evidence, I feel, of miracles not
bleach. I wish you could see the exhibition. I’ve copped a bit of flack about the
legless men and dying babies and of course these images are not the total reality of
Ethiopia nor Eritrea. There are images of people going about their ordinary
everyday business – ploughing fields, weaving shawls, spinning cotton, tending stock
(including the fattest cow in Ethiopia). There are landscapes of incredible greens,
monks in brilliant orange robes) and one in viridian with, over his shoulder, an
iridescent green plastic bag and a bright blue umbrella), a series as a tribute to the
Daughters of Charity (God must give them big hearts I think) and their provincial
was pleased to see that they had prayed in her absence. I prayed too. Noel says that
when all else has gone we turn back to prayer. Again he is right. But for those other
`black’ images. They have already been killed by AIDS and war. I can’t kill them
again by the silence of invisibility.

I hope it goes well as I hope you are


Love Libby

Keith Robinson, to whom this letter is written, died of AIDS some 12 years ago.
Every now and again I write him a letter.
189

APPENDIX 3. What was it like to sit beside a dying man?

What was it like to sit beside the bed of a dying man?

Are writing and painting the same? In trying to write this I am immediately
reminded of a fragment of text that was part of the Auckland exhibition1 I saw
`documenting’ New Zealand’s involvement in various wars. The text, black
writing on clear vinyl stuck up on the wall, was a quotation from a now
elderly man, a soldier in the 1914 – 1918 War. 'I came home to my mother
and my father and two brothers and a sister. No one asked me what it was
like. For seventy years no one asked me what it was like. Until now'.

I sat beside Ian’s2 bed last week as he was dying. I was dreading going to the
hospital. Dreading going back to the smell of death. I got such a shock when
they said he was expected to die within 48 hours that I scraped my car in two
separate car parks that day - something I have never done before.
Sometimes, during those days and early evenings, I would lift off. No not lift
off. Dissolve. Was it Ian who lay there? Or Arthur3? Or Keith? Or Brett?
Or Adrian? It seems obscene to confuse one man with another. It is
mesmerizing. I watch the drips of the saline drip. There is a machine with
digital numbers that keep changing all the time and I don’t know what they
mean. But it doesn’t really matter. Ian is dying and it won’t make any
difference if the drips are out of sequence – or even if they stop. Later we
learn the drip is to help alleviate the symptoms of renal failure. The spasms
which twitch his fingers and his shoulders. Is he in pain? How long do I
wait before I go to the nurses and ask for more drugs? Is it for us who are
watching or for Ian who is twitching that we ask for relief? Does it matter?
Kathy is concerned that we don’t `do it for us’. But now, I say, it can be for
us as well as for Ian. It defies time sitting beside a dying man. The first

1
NZ at War, Auckland Museum 1990.
2
Ian was the husband of my friend Kathy Hunt.
3
Arthur was my husband, Keith Robinson I have already identified, Brett and Adrian were young men
who I met at the Day Centre for people living with AIDS in Sydney. Brett also became my Ankali
client and I was to become the executor for Adrian's Estate..
190

evening Kathy was wearing a yellow shirt. A rusty yellow. I wrote a poem
once of sitting beside Adrian. I was wearing a bright yellow jumper. I don’t
know where it is now. Yellow is the colour I love most passionately and even
when I don’t think I will use it I always put out a great blob of it on my
palette. When Adrian finally died about 3 o’clock in the morning I wrote my
fingers shook as I went to light a cigarette and my jumper reeked of the sweet
sweet smell of death.

Each breath is like a rasping snore - or groan. Kathy counts the time
between the breaths. I don’t think he will die tonight. His breathing is too
regular and strong. But Wardi died when his was too. The first time I had
seen anyone die. The first time I had seen a 'dead body' and I understood
what Debbie4 had tried to tell me when I was so worried about how I would
cope. 'They are just not there. They are dead'. I couldn’t imagine at the time
but then I understood. Noel5 says death is such an ultimate and final event.
In my head I know that but sitting beside the bed it seems as though time will
go on forever. It will always be like this. Of course it won’t but that is what
it seems like. And hours stretch into nights and days and we wonder what is
keeping him alive. Is there something we have to do? Or something Ian has
to do? Or is it simply there is nothing we can do. Louise’s6 sister got
married in a hall in the Dandenong Ranges7. To a born again bikie. Six
months he had been `reborn’. There was a stage at the end of the Hall where
a woman was playing the piano as we waited for the bride. Jannine was late
and the woman kept playing the piano and looking over her shoulder. For a
surreal moment it seemed Jannine would never appear and for all eternity the
woman would be looking over her shoulder playing the piano.

It was like that. As though this time, in this room, would go on for all
eternity. And the compulsion to keep watching. Not to go away. Even for a

4
One of my oldest friends, Debbie Newell, who was a physiotherapist and of whom I felt I could ask
'hospital' questions.
5
Noel Rowe I have already mentioned as long time friend and mentor.
6
Louise Cox another long time friend. Her sister is Jannine.
7
Dandenong Ranges, just outside Melbourne, Victoria.
191

snatched cigarette. Keep watching. Praying even. And realizing, eventually,


that everything has its time. Even death. Or especially death. The utter
finality of knowing that. As though we were both frozen in time. No power to
change the course of events. I think about the meaning of `to endure’. When
time is out of our hands. We can guess. Educatedly to be sure. But still
guess. And wait and endure. Kathy is exhausted and I am buggered. A blank
space behind my eyes. A tightness that sleep does not relax. Watchful I
suppose you call it. I put a pillow under Kathy’s head as she rests on the bed
holding his hand. I go home. Kathy goes back to the hospital flat and one of
her son’s takes over the vigil. 'I have never thought of vigil like this' she says
'but I guess that is what we are doing. Keeping the vigil.' It seems such a
sacred time. And so intense as though nothing else matters – except
watching. And praying. And just being – somehow suspended. But I when I
go home I am starving. A friend of Ian’s comes in. He says Ian would be
horrified to know that he was holding his hand and calling him Darling. I
say I think the end of life and the beginning – with tiny babies – are the times
when we are given permission to do and say what we like. Show as much
love and affection as we need to. And they accept it and don’t call us silly
and stupid.

And tomorrow we do it again. And the next day. And the next day. And then
he dies.

The following text is a reflection on the phenomenological process that followed the
initial writing above:

Is this a description of lived experience? I can see the painting of it in my


head and I will have to paint it soon. I think I will ask Kathy to be my model
– sitting with her head resting on the bed. Is she me or I her? How can I
paint utter weariness – and timelessness – and endurance? And the other
painting that is forming itself is the sweet sweet smell of death. I need to
explore some glazing techniques. The pervasiveness of the smell. I am
192

reminded of Lloyd Rees8 trying to paint his experience of a bushfire – all red
and gold and black. And he thought it was too raw and covered it with a
milky glaze – and somehow it worked. Kathy had never experienced death
like this. The waiting beside the bed as someone dies. Inadequately I said it
is like making something out of clay. When we first mould and sculpt the clay
it has a wetness and life. As it dries out the clay changes colour – and
texture. It is more fail and fragile. And then it is fired and glazed and it
takes on a cold translucence. The process of dying, I said, is sometimes like
that. The body shuts down. It loses its warmth and the angles and planes of
the face become blue green. Icy. And I was thinking after that of a series of
clay masks I want to make – to describe that process.9 I hate masks but the
beginning and the end pieces will have to be masks. The middle piece will be
my torso. I will have to work out a way to make some pieces still look wet.
And the end piece will be glazed white. Don’t whitewash the dead.

Why do I want to paint this – these – experiences? Quite simply I need to. I
walked into the kitchen of a friend yesterday. Then some others rang to say
that they were `calling in’. They had been to a memorial service for a friend
and neighbor. And my stomach heaved. Not more death. Not more grief.
Not more stories. I am weighed down by death. And I want to live. Fully.
Over the years I have told stories about the death and dying of my friends. I
told some to Kathy and her sister. It seemed appropriate and it seemed to
help them understand some of the mysteries of dying. Some I have perhaps
written. I can’t remember. Now I have to paint them. To lessen the load so I
can go on. So the stories can have their fullness. Perhaps completion. In
some form because they will never be finished. They have become the
`needless dead’. The series of drawing I did last year. Compulsively. Every
time I picked up my brush out would come these figures. 'I mourn the
needless dead'. I read it in a book. The Railway Station Man10.

8
Rees (1987,p.129).
9
In the end the need to make clay works was not there - so I didn't.
10
Johnston (1985).
193

'To be silenced by the stillness of reflection' (van Manen 1984,p.99). Is this


what it means 'when the meaning of an experience has emerged'? The
endless drawing of the saddle of hills at Ormiston Gorge. It went on for
months and it nearly drove me crazy. Until, one day, the meaning of that
particular experience in the Gorge emerged. And then I stopped drawing the
saddle of hills. Silenced? Will the painting of Kathy silence the memories?
Take out the gut wrenching immediacy of what happened in the past? Dear
God, I hope so.

'Lived experience and the structures of meaning…. in terms of which these


lived experiences can be described and interpreted constitute the immense
complexity of the life world' (ibid,p.101) I have just realized one of the
reasons I love the remote outback and deserts. I have always said I loved
them because they are so timeless and ancient. I feel at peace and at one in
those areas. There is no compulsion to do. I just have to be. And yet sitting
beside the hospital bed is the same. The same sense of timelessness. I am not
asked to do anything (or not much) just to be. Yet it drains me of energy. My
being is full nothingness. Like a blank slate and I have no energy to write.
194

APPENDIX 4. Selected Exhibitions

2003 Fourth Art in the Woolshed, Pikedale, Group


2002 Bush/Bay, Solo, Art Café Manly
2002 Glimpses of Samoa, Apia. Western Samoa
2001 QCL Art Awards, Group, Logan Art Gallery
2001 Our Past Our Future, Centenary of Federation Exhibition, Group,
Outback Regional Gallery, Winton
2001 Portrait of A Cranky Sheep, Solo, Texas Regional Art Gallery
2001 Art in the Woolshed, Group, Pikedale
2001 suffering knows no geography, Perc Tucker Regional Gallery,
Townsville and Townsville Art Society Gallery
2001 suffering knows no geography, Solo, Warwick Art Gallery
2001 -2005 Viet Nam Voices, Group, National Travelling Exhibition
curated by Casula Powerhouse, Sydney
2000 Figures From the Landscape of Memory, Solo, Michel Sourgnes Fine
Art, Brisbane
2000 Down the Track – the After Effects of War, Solo, Stanthorpe Regional
Art Gallery
1999 The After Effects of War, Group, Dept. Veteran Affairs Conference,
Powerhouse Museum, Sydney
1999 The Earth Which Breathes the Sun, Solo, in conjunction with 1V
International Rangelands Congress, Townsville
1999 Art in the Woolshed, Group, Pikedale
1999 Waltzing Matilda Art Show, Group, Winton
1999 Mixed Impressions, Solo, Christina Mitchell Gallery, Brisbane
1998 As a Lizard Drinks, Solo, Sydney
1998 Landscapes of Desire, Solo, Brisbane
1997 The Colours of Light and Desire, Solo, Toulouse, France
1996 Hot Rubber Red Dust, Gallery Agua, Noosaville
1995 Life Works, Group, Toowoomba Regional Art Gallery
1994 Corridor Exhibition, Toowoomba Base Hospital, Toowoomba, Group
1993 Madly Arty, Toowoomba, Group
195

1993 Hard Curves Soft Edges, Collaborative with David Blomfield,


Warwick Art Gallery
1992 Three Artists, Kyneton Art Gallery, Victoria, Group
1978 - 1986 Balranald Community Arts and Craft Exhibitions, Balranald.
196

APPENDIX 5. Details of Images


Figure No. Facing Page No.

1. The Quilt, 2002


Mono Print on paper, 29 x 26 cm. 5
2. Ricko, Portrait of a Vietnam Veteran, 1999
Acrylic on canvas, 120 x 120 cm. 6
3. I didn't expect it to be like this, 1999
Ink and acrylic on paper, 50 x 60 cm. 7
4. A Man With AIDS 11, 2000
Ink on paper, 23 x 20 cm. 8
5. My Father's Dreams, 1999
Ink and acrylic on paper, 56 x 76 cm. 9
6. The Roots and Threads of Meaning, 2003
Silk, and cotton on cotton, 160 x 120 cm. 12
7. Rabbit Trap, 2002
Ink on paper, 28 x 38 cm. 20
8. Figures in Shellac, 2003
Acrylic, ink, shellac on greaseproof paper, 180 x 110 cm. 21
9. PTSD - So Bloody What?, 2002
Mixed media collage on paper, 130 x 95 cm. 23
10. Robed Women and Drought, 2002
Mono print on paper, 28 x 26 cm. 34
11. Red Blotches, 2002
Mono print on paper, 25 x 23 cm. 56

12. Blue Gate, 2002


Mono print on paper, 25 x 23 cm. 57
13. Cream Robed Woman, 2003
Acrylic on muslin and calico, 215 x 98 cm. 93

14. So Still, and Silent, and Enduring, 2003


Acrylic, glitter thread, organdie on cotton canvas, each panel 30 x 21 cm. 94
15. Sienna Hills of Home, 2002
Mono print on paper, 29 x 26 cm 95
197

16. Glued writing, 2003


Ink, shellac, wallpaper paste on MDF cut out figure, approx. 200 cm x 50cm 96
17. Ma and the Nurse, Book 1,2003
Ink, acrylic, shellac on greaseproof paper, each page 30 x 30 cm 98
18. Bundles of Rags, 2003
Suede, screen printed linen, cotton on calico 187 x 100 cm. 99
19. Woven Landscape, 2003
Acrylic, shellac, greaseproof paper and Japanese rice paper, 150 x 200 cm. 102
20. How a Dying Baby Became a Waterfall, Book 10, 2003
Ink on paper, 43 x 75 cm. 111
21. If I start Crying Now, 1999
Ink and acrylic on paper, 76 x 56 cm. 113

22. Skeletal Man, 2002


Mono print on paper, 25 x 20 cm. 114

23. Grief Viewing Grief, 2002


Mono print on paper, 28 x 28 cm. 117

24. Duo Becomes the Trinity, 2002


Ink, acrylic, shellac on greaseproof paper, each panel 120 x 30 cm. 120
25. No Grave/Crosses, 2002
Mono print on paper, 26 x 22 cm. 126
26. Beside the Bed, 2002
Mono print on paper, 29 x 26 cm. 141

27. Drought Sheep 4, 2002


Ink and acrylic on paper, 56 x 76 cm. 143
28. I've Always Hated Maggots, 2002
Mono print on paper, 33 x 25 cm. 148

29. Dad's Leg and Spoon, 2002


Mono print on paper, 33 x 25 cm. 150
30. Dad's Leg/ Keith's Sore 11, 2002
Mono print on paper, 33 x 25 cm. 152
198

APPENDIX 6. Selected papers, conferences and publications

Publications

Woodhams, Libby.(2003) 'Knitting Backwards' Textile Fibre Forum, 22 (Issue 4,


No.72)26 - 27.

Woodhams, L and Bishop, M (Eds.) (1995) The Arts in Health – exploring the role of the
Arts in Health, Conference papers. The Cunningham Centre, Darling Downs Regional
Health Authority, Queensland Health.

Crafting Art in Health (1994) Craft Link, 8 (8 September), 3-4.

Andrew, in Brown, Joe (Ed.). (1992) A Promise to Remember – The Names Project Book
of Letters, Avon Books, New York, 66-67.

The Textile of Tummies – or a Reflection on Don’t Leave Me This Way – Art in the Age
of AIDS. (1995) Textile Fibre Forum, 14 (Issue 2 No. 43) 42.

The Art of Living, 1995 Network News, Queensland Community Arts Network, (Edition
2), 5-6.

The Arts in Health – implications for Artistic and Health Practice, Policy Development,
Education and Training, (1995) Australian Journal of Primary Health Care –
Interchange, La Trobe University, Bundoora, Victoria,1 (No.1, October),66-7.

Papers and Workshops

2002 Art in AIDS and War.Guest Speaker, Samoa Luncheon Club, Western Samoa,

2001 AIDS and War in Ethiopia and Eritrea. Keynote Address, Zonta Rural Women’s
Expo, Roma

2001 Guest Lecturer, Barrier Reef TAFE, Townsville.

2000 The Ethical Questions Arising from Travels to Ethiopia and Eritrea. Seminar.
QUT Centre for the Study of Ethics

1998. -`The Ethical Issues that Arise with Artistic Practice within Health Care Settings’.
Keynote Address, 2nd National Conference Arts in Health, Toowoomba

1995 1. The Role of the Arts in Health – implications for artistic and clinical practice.
2. The Use of Art to Teach Ethics, Workshops. Australian and New Zealand Association
of Medical Education Conference, Queenstown, New Zealand.
199

1995 Reflection on a series of paintings Ormiston Gorge, NT. Paper presented at


2nd International Australian Conference Religion Literature and the Arts.

1995 The Art of Space – Spaces reflect an Ethical Worldview,Colloquium, Religion Art
and Architecture. Sydney. `

1995 Interaction between Community Health and the Arts Joint Plenary with Michael
Bishop. Australian Community Health Association 5th National Conference,
Brisbane

1995 Gap Insurance – The Role of the Arts in Health, Flourishing and Well Being.
Workshop/Paper presented at Third National Women’s Health Conference,
Canberra.

1994 Art in Mental Health: an experiential and theoretical exploration. Workshop


given at 4th Annual Mental Health Services Conference of Australia and New
Zealand, Melbourne.

1991 Healing Art. Workshop/ Paper presented at First International Conference on


Biopsychosocial Aspects of HIV/AIDS Infection’ Amsterdam.
200

11. BIBLIOGRAPHY
Art and the Influence of War. Retrieved 12/12/2003, 2003, from the World Wide
Web: http://library.thinkquest.org/C005707F/artists.htm.
AAVE.Bibliography: Australian Art of the Vietnam Experience. Retrieved
14/10/2002, 2002, from the World Wide Web:
idun.itsc.adfa.edu.au/SOE/VIETNAM/bibliography.
Adamson, J., Freadman, R., & Parker, D. (Eds.). (1998). Renegotiating Ethics in
Literature, Philosophy, and Theory. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Adler, K. (1978). Camille Pissarro a Biography. London: B.T.Batsford Ltd.
Aiko, U. (1997). Changing Japanese Views of the Allied Occupation of Japan and
the War Crimes Trials. Retrieved, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.awm.gov.au/journal/j30/utsumi.htm
Alexander, C., Ishikawa, S., Silverstein, M. w., Jacobson, M., Fiksdahl-King, I., &
Angel, S. (1977). A Pattern Language. Towns. Buildings.Construction. New
York: Oxford University Press.
Allan, S. (1999). Diary of a Girl in Changi 1941 -1945. 2nd Edition Including the
Changi Quilts. Sydney: Kangaroo Press.
Allen, D. (1983). Death of My Father - a Sketchbook. Brisbane: Ray Hughes Gallery.
Allen, D. (1991). The Autobiography of Vicki Myers: Close to the Bone. Redfern,
N.S.W.
Allen, D. (1991). What Is a Portrait? The Images of Vicki Myers. Redfern, N.S.W.:
New Endeavour Press.
Allen, J. (Ed.). (1984). The Humour of Barry Humphries. Sydney: Currency Press.
Amazon.com. Rhyme and Punishment: An Interview with Ute Lemper. Retrieved
24/09/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.amazon.com/exec/obidos/tg/feature/-/34147/102-4670931-5522511
Amishai-Maisels, Z. (1985). Gauguin's Religious Themes. Unpublished Thesis
submitted for the Degree of "Doctor of Philosophy", Hebrew University.
Amishai-Maisels, Z. (1993). Depiction and Interpretation. The Influence of the
Holocaust on the Visual Arts. Oxford, New York, Seoul, Tokyo: Pergamon Press.
Amishai-Maisels, Z. (1995). The Complexities of Witnessing. In M. Bohm-Duchen
(Ed.), After Auschwitz. Responses to the Holocaust in Contemporary Art (pp. 25 -
48). Sunderland, London: Northern Centre for Contemporary Art in association
with Lund Humphries.
Amishai-Maisels, Z. (1995). Art Confronts the Holocaust. In M. Bohm-Duchen
(Ed.), After Auschwitz. Responses to the Holocaust in Contemporary Art (pp. 49 -
77). Sunderland, London: Northern Centre for Contemporary Art in association
with Lund Humphries.
201

Anders, G. (Ed.). (1989). Burning Conscience. The Case of the Hiroshina Pilot,
Claude Eatherly, Told in His Letters to Gunther Anders, with a Postscript for
American Readers by Anders. New York: Paragon House.
Anderson, L. (2003). Laurie Anderson: Interview. ABC Radio National Classic FM.
Anderson, N. (2002). "Damnable Struggle" for Hope. Wartime. Official Magazine of
the Australian War Memorial, 20, 35 - 37.
Anissimov, M. (1998). Primo Levi. Tragedy of an Optimist. London: Aurum Press.
Aoki, M. Y., & Dardess, M. B. (c.1981). As the Japanese See It: Past and Present.
Honolulu: University Press of Hawaii.
Apostolos-Cappadona, D. (Ed.). (1984). Art, Creativity and the Sacred. An
Anthology in Religion and Art. New York: Crossroad.
Apostolos-Cappadona, D., & Ebersole, L. (Eds.). (2001). Women, Creativity, and the
Arts. New York, New York: The Continuum Publishing Company.
Appel, D. (2000). "Dark Mirrors from Japan" 2000-06-02 until 2000-08-06.
Retrieved 12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.absolutearts.com/artsnews/2000/06/05/27050.html
Arbus, D. (1972). Diane Arbus. An Aperture Monograph. New York: Aperture
Foundation,Inc.
Arbus, D. (1995). Untitled. Diane Arbus. London: Thames and Hudson.
Areum News. (2002). Areum Exhibition 2002-Arts of Korean Residents in Japan as
the Origin. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http;//www/areum.org/home_e/news/news.html
Arnold, B. (1998). Art, Music and World War 11. In L. E. Lee (Ed.), World War 11
in Asia and the Pacific and the War's Aftermath, with General Themes. Westport,
Conneciticiut. London: Greenwood Press.
Art Gallery of South Australia. (2002). Arid Arcadia, Art of the Flinders Ranges.
Retrieved, 2002, from the World Wide Web: Arid Arcadia Education Pack Art
Gallery of South Australia.
Arthus-Bertrand, Y. (2001). Earth from Above. Abrams (USA).
Asker, D. (1997). Phenomenological Research: A Case Study in A. McCulloch (Ed.),
Double Dialogues: Conference with a Difference,1996. Deakin University:
Burwood, Vic.:Deakin University.
Asker, D. (2001). Personal Meanings and Artistic Processes: A Study of Multi-
Modal Improvisation. Unpublished Doctor of Philosophy, The University of
Melbourne, Melbourne.
Astbury, L. (1992). Death and Eroticism in the Anzac Legend. Art and Australia,
30(No.1. Spring), 68 - 73.
202

Auckland City Art Gallery. (1988). Colin McCahon Gates and Journeys.
Auckland,NZ: Auckland City Art Gallery.
Auckland Museum. (c.1999). NZ at War. Scars on the Heart [Exhibition]. Retrieved,
from the World Wide Web:
http://www.akmuseum.org.nz/web/content.cfm?Id=250
Australia. Dept. of Veterans' Affairs. (1999). Laden, Fevered, Starved. The POWs of
Sandakan North Borneo;1945: Commonwealth Department of Veterans' Affairs.
Australian War Memorial.Art Database. Retrieved 10/03/99 from the World Wide
Web: awm-public/database/art.asp.
Australian War Memorial.Author Index. Journal of the Australian War Memorial.
Retrieved 3/02/2003 from the World Wide Web:
http://www.awm.gov.au/journal/index_author.htm.
Bachelard, G. (1964). The Poetics of Space. Boston: Beacon Press.
Baddely, C. (2002). Peter Churcher, Official War Artist. Retrieved 4/8/2003, from
the World Wide Web: http://awm-public/events/talks/churcher.htm.
Barbour, J. D. (1992). The Conscience of the Autobiographer. Ethical and Religious
Dimensions of Autobiography. London: Macmillan.
Barker, P. (2003). Double Vision. London: Hamish Hamilton. Penguin Books.
Barragan, A. J. L. (2001). 26th Special Session of the General Assembly [Address,
Head Holy See Delegation]. Retrieved 12/12/2003 from the World Wide Web:
http://www.vatican.va/roman_curia/secretariat_state/documents/rc_seg-
st_doc_20010.
Barritt, L. S., & Marshall, M. J. (1992). "The Literature" in the Crafting of a
Profession. Phenomenology + Pedagogy, 10, 233 - 242.
Batschmann, O. (1997). The Artist in the Modern World. The Conflict between
Market and Self-Expression. Cologne: DuMont Buchverlag.
Bell, E. (Ed.). The Chapel at Ronchamp. New York: Princeton Architectural Press.
Bell, G. (2003). Shot. A Personal Response to Guns and Trauma. Sydney: Picador.
PanMacmillan Australia.
Bentley, S. (n.d.). A Short History of PTSD. Soldiers Have Always Had a Disturbing
Reaction to War.
Bernet, R. (2000). The Traumatized Subject. Retrieved 8/03/2003, from the World
Wide Web:
http://gateway.library.qut.edu.au:2074/citation.asp?tb=1&_ug=dbs+0+ln+en%2D
us+si.
Berridge, K. (2001). Vigor Mortis. The End of the Death Taboo. London: Profile
Books.
203

Beyrer, C. (1998). War in the Blood. Sex, Politics and Aids in Southeast Asia.
London and New York: Zed Books Ltd.
Bingen., H. o. (1985). Illuminations of Hildegard of Bingen (with commentary by
Matthew Fox, O.P. Trans.). Santa Fe, New Mexico: Bear and Company.
Bishop, P. (1994). Editorial. Artlink, 14(4 Summer).
Black, J. A. (2001). Reflections of War.(Review)(Book Review). Afterimage,
Jan,2001. Retrieved 14/10/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.findarticles.com/cf_0/m2479/4_28/76560790/print.jhtml.
Blackburn, K. (2000). Commemorating and Commodifying the Prisoner of War
Experience in South-East Asia: The Creation of Changi Prison Museum. Journal
of the Australian War Memorial(33)
Bohm-Duchen, M. (1995). After Auschwitz. Responses to the Holocaust in
Contemporary Art. London: Northern Centre for Contemporary Art, Sunderland
in association with Lund Humphries.
Bonyhady, T., & Griffiths, T. (Eds.). (2002). Words for Country. Landscape &
Language in Australia. Sydney: UNSW Press.
Bosworth, R. J. B. (1993). Explaining Auschwitz and Hiroshima. History Writing
and the Second World War 1945 - 1990. London, New York: Routledge.
Boulton, J. T., & Vasey, L. (Eds.). (1989). The Letters of D.H.Lawrence. Volume V
March 1924 - March 1927. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Bowden, T. (1991). Interview with John Hinde, War Correspondent. The Keith
Murdoch Sound Archive of Australia in the War of 1939 - 45: Australian War
Memorial.
Bowden, T. (2002). Neil Davis. Retrieved 30/06/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/dimensions/dimensions_in_time/Transcripts/s665761.htm.
Bradshaw, S. (2003). Sex & the Holy City. BBC. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/foreign/stories/s1000575.htm.
Bragg, M. (1999). The Soldier's Return. London: Septre.
Brandauer, A. C., Hammond, H., & Wilson, A. (1998). Agnes Martin: Works on
Paper. Santa Fe, New Mexico: Museum of Fine Arts, Museum of New Mexico.
Bravery, K. (1990, October 13, 1990). Dear Life. Good Weekend. The Sydney
Morning Herald Magazine, 20 - 29.
Brennan, F. F. (2003). Jesuit Priest and Lawyer. Interview. ABC Radio National.
Brett, L., & Drawings by David Rankin. (1986). The Auschwitz Poems. Melbourne:
Scribe.
Briggs, C. L. (Ed.). (1996). Disorderly Discourses: Narrative, Conflict,& Inequality.
New York: Oxford University Press.
204

Brill, D. (2003). News and Documentary Cinematographer: ABC Radio National


Classic FM.
Brims, J. (2002). George Gittoes, Portraitist with a Difference.Unpublished
manuscript, Brisbane.
Brims, J. (c.2001). A Visit to Bundeena.Unpublished manuscript, Brisbane.
Britain, I. (1997). Once an Australian. Journeys with Barry Humphries, Clive James,
Germaine Greer and Robert Hughes. Oxford University Press.
Broadkey, H. (1996). This Wild Darkness. The Story of My Death. New York:
Metropolitian Books. Henry Holt and Company.
Brooks, M. The Lived Experience of Making a Life Drawing: Drawing Amy.
Retrieved 13/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.alt.ualberta.ca/po/articles/textoriumtemplate.cfm?ID=413.
Brophy, K. (2002). (Dub)Ble Exposure. Retrieved 28/02/2003, from the World Wide
Web: http://www.doubledialgoue.com/Issue_two/brophy.htm.
Brown, J. (Ed.). (1992). A Promise to Remember: The Names Project Book of
Letters:Avon.
Brown, P. (c. July,2003). Photographic Memory. Requiem: By the Photographers
Who Died in Vietnam and Indochina. The Brisbane News, 25.
Bruner, J. (1987). Life as Narrative. Social Research, 54(1), 11 - 32.
Bryan, J. N. L. (1946). The Churches of Captivity in Malaya. London: Society for
Promoting Christian Knowledge.
Buchloh, B. H. D. (1985). Gerhard Richter. March 1985. New York: Marian
Goodman/ Sperone Westwater in cooperation with Konrad Fischer.
Buck, R. T. J. Richard Diebenkorn. Paintings and Drawings, 1943 -1980. Buffalo,
New York: Albright-Knox Art Gallery.
Buenger, B. C. (Ed.). (1997). Max Beckmann. Self-Portrait in Words. Chicago and
London: The University of Chicago Press.
Bull, C. (Ed.). (2003). While the World Sleeps. Writing from the First Twenty Years
of the Global Aids Plague. New York: Thunder's Mouth Press.
Bullard, S. (2002). Kokada. A Japanese Tragedy. Wartime. The Official Magazine of
the Australian War Memorial, 20 - 21.
Bunbury, B. (2003). Wondering Why You're Here? Retrieved 7/05/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http:/www.abc.net.au/rn/relig/enc/stories/s834278.htm
Burke, J. (1982). The Post-War Years in Australian Art. Some Lessons for the
Future. Sydney: The Sir William Dobell Art Foundation.
Burke, J. (1983). Joy Hester. Richmond, Victoria: Greenhouse Publications.
205

Burke, J. (1990). Field of Vision. A Decade of Change: Women's Art in the Seventies:
Viking. Penguin Books Australia Ltd.
Burke, J. (Ed.). (2001). Dear Sun. The Letters of Joy Hester and Sunday Reed.
Sydney: Vintage.
Burke, J. (2002). Australian Gothic. A Life of Albert Tucker. Milsons Point: Knopf.
Burn, M. (2000). Documenting HIV/AIDS: The Response from Cultural Institutions
[Public Symposium on Every eight seconds. 29 -30 November, 2000. National
Library of Australia, Canberra]. Retrieved 10/12/2003, from the World Wide
Web.
Burr, T. (2003, April 12-13). Everyone Can See the Wounded Screaming in
Cyberspace. The Sydney Morning Herald, p. 9.
Burstall, T. (1986). The Soldiers' Story. The Battle at Xa Long Tan, Vietnam,18
August 1966. Brisbane: University of Queensland Press.
Buruma, I. (1995). The Wages of Guilt. Memories of War in Germany and Japan. A
Meridian Book. Penguin.
Butler, R. (Ed.). (1991). Being and Nothingness: Bea Maddock. Work from Three
Decades. Canberra: Australian National Gallery.
Butler, R. (1996). An Uncertain Smile. Australian Art in the '90's. Artspace.
Byatt, A. S. (2001). Portraits in Fiction. London: Chatto & Windus.
Cadzow, J. (1994, October 22). AIDS. Good Weekend. Sydney Morning Herald
Magazine, 39 - 46.
Campbell, G. (2002). Art by Art Therapists. American Journal of Art Therapy, 40(4),
280.
Caputo, J. D. (2003). Against Principles: A Sketch of an Ethics without Ethics. In E.
Wyschogrod & G. P. McKenny (Eds.), The Ethical (pp. 169 - 180). Oxford:
Blackwell Publishing.
Carroll, A. (1986). Barbara Hanrahan Printmaker. Netley SA.: Wakefield Press.
Carthew, N. (2002). Voices from the Trenches. Letters to Home. Sydney: New
Holland.
Caruth, C. (Ed.). (1995). Trauma. Explorations in Memory. Baltimore and London:
John Hopkins University Press.
Caruth, C. (1995). An Interview with Robert Jay Lifton. In C. Caruth (Ed.), Trauma.
Explorations in Memory (pp. 128 -147). Baltimore and London: The John
Hopkins University Press.
Caruth, C. (1996). Unclaimed Experience. Trauma, Narrative and History. Baltimore
and London: The John Hopkins University Press.
206

Caruth, C., & Keenan, T. (1995). "The AIDS Crisis Is Not over": A Conversation
with Gregg Bordowitz, Douglas Crimp, and Laura Pinsky. In C. Caruth (Ed.),
Trauma. Explorations in Memory (pp. 256 - 271). Baltimore and London: The
John Hopkins University Press.
Cassab, J. (1995). Judy Cassab Diaries. Sydney: Alfred A Knopf.
Castle, P. C. (2001). Who Cares for the Wounded Journalist? A Study of the
Treatment of Journalists Suffering from Exposure to Trauma. Unpublished
Masters, Queensland University of Technology, Brisbane.
Catalano, G. (1997). Building a Picture. Interviews with Australian Artists.
Roseville. NSW: McGraw-Hill Australia.
Causey, A. (1995). Mapping and Representation. In P. Melia (Ed.), David Hockney
(pp. 89 - 110). Manchester and NewYork: Manchester University Press.
Chagall, M. (c.1991). Message Biblique in Petits Guides Des Grands Musees. Paris:
Musee National, Editions de la Reunion des Musee Nationaux.
Chalker, J. B. Papers of Jack Bridger Chalker Wallet 2.Unpublished manuscript,
Australian War Memorial:Canberra.
Chapman, C. (1995). My Own Private Idaho. Recent Work by Scott Redford. Art
and Australia, 33(Summer), 364 - 369.
Chatwin, B. (1987). The Songlines. London: Picador.
Chicago, J. (1975). Through the Flower. My Struggle as A Woman Artist: Penguin
Books.
Chicago, J. (1993). Holocaust Project. From Darkness to Light: Penguin Books.
Chicago, J. (1996). Beyond the Flower. The Autobiography of a Feminist Artist. New
York: Penguin Books.
Chicago, J., & Lucie-Smith, E. (1999). Women and Art. Contested Territory.
London: Weidenfeld & Nicolson.
Churcher, B. (2004). The Art of War. The Miegunyah Press: Victoria.
Clayson, H. (2002). Paris in Despair. Art and Everyday Life under Siege 1870 -71.
Chicago and London: The University of Chicago Press.
Clendinnen, I. (1998). Reading the Holocaust. Melbourne: Text Publishing.
Coates, R., & Morphy, H. (Eds.). (1997). In Place (Out of Time). Contemporary Art
in Australia. Oxford: Museum of Modern Art.
Cohen, M. Z., Kahn, D. L., & Steeves, R. H. (Eds.). (2000). Hermeneutic
Phenomenological Research. A Practical Guide for Nurse Researchers. Thousand
Oaks, California: Sage Publications, Inc.
Coleman, P. (1990). The Real Barry Humphries. London: Robson Books Ltd.
207

Collins, F. (1997). Baptism of Fire. London: Corgi Books.


Colmer, J. (1989). Australian Autobiography: The Personal Quest. Melbourne:
Oxford University Press.
Conrad, S. (2003). Entangled Memories : Versions of the Past in Germany and
Japan, 1945 - 2001. Journal of Contemporary History, 38 (1), 85 - 99.
Cook, D. (1993). The Subject Finds a Voice. Foucault's Turn toward Subjectivity.
New York: Peter Lang Publishing,Inc.
Cook, H. T., & Cook, T. F. (1992). Japan at War. An Oral History. New York: The
New Press.
Copeland, J. (2002). The Language of Drawing: ABC Radio National.
Copeland, J. (2002). Women Artists. ABC Radio National. Retrieved 25/11/2002,
2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.abc.net.au/rn/sunmorn/stories/s481567.htm.
Courtenay, B. (2001). Four Fires. Australia: Viking Penguin Books.
Courtenay, B. ((1993)1998). April Fool's Day. Penguin Books: Australia.
Cox, P. (1998). Reflections. An Autobiographical Journey. Sydney: Currency Press.
Crawford, A. (2002). Wimmera. The Work of Philip Hunter. Fisherman's Bend,
Victoria: Thames and Hudson.
Cribb, R. (2003). On Evil. Retrieved 7/05, 2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/relig/enc/stories/s844343.htm.
Crittenden, S. (2003). Catholic Liturgy in Flux. Retrieved 23/09/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/rn/talks/8.30/relrpt/stories/s942904.htm.
Crosby, G.(n.d.). 'When the Bottom Falls out'. Tree and Jubilee. San Francisco:
Kairos House. A Resource Center for the Caregivers of HIV Affected Persons.
Crotty, M. (1996). Phenomenology and Nursing Research. Melbourne: Churchill
Livingstone.
Crowe, A. (1999). The Battle after the War. The Story of Australia's Vietnam
Veterans. Sydney: Allen & Unwin.
Crump, J. (1995). (Dis)Regarding Plague Art: Current Strategies for Representing
AIDS. New Art Examiner, 22(8,April), 18 - 23.
Cumming, R. D. (1991). Phenomenology and Deconstruction. Chicago: The
University of Chicago Press.
Cvetkovich, A. (2003). Mourning and Militancy Revisited. Retrieved 7/10/2003,
from the World Wide Web:
http://www.barnard.columbia.edu/sfonline/ps/cvetkov2.htm.
208

Cvetkovich, A. (2003). AIDS Activism and the Oral History Archive. Retrieved 7/10/
2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.barnard.columbia.edu/sfonline/ps/printacv.htm.
Cvetkovich, A. (2003). Activist Grief. Retrieved 7/10/2003, from the World Wide
Web: http://www.barnard.columbia.edu/sfonline/ps/cvetkov3.htm.
Cvetkovich, A. (2003). Remembering Hope. Retrieved 7/10/2003, from the World
Wide Web: http://barnard.columbia.edu/sfonline/ps/cvetkov4.htm.
Dalton, G. (2000). World Diary. George Gittoes. Hazelhurst Regional Gallery.
Daly, P., & Doyle, J. (1998). The Void Project. Art of the Vietnam-American War.
the Australian Experience. Retrieved 14/10/2002, from the World Wide Web:
idun.itsc.adfa.edu.au/SOE/VIETNAM/void.html.
Dasent, P. (1997). Cross-Fertilisation in Music. Some Personal Thoughts. Sounds
Australia. Journal of the Australian Music Centre, 15(50), 14.
Davila, J. (1991). Deathwatch. AIDS&Silence. Art and Text, 40(September), 33 - 34.
Davila, J. (2002). Juan Davila: Woomera. Retrieved 18/06/2003, from the World
Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/arts/visual/stories/s534433.htm.
Davis, J. (1993). Affliction and Transcendence. New Art Examiner, 20(5. January),
32 -33.
Daws, G. (1994). Prisoners of the Japanese. POWs of World War 11 in the Pacific.
New York: Quill William Morrow.
Day, C. (1990). Places of the Soul. Architecture and Environmental Design as a
Healing Art. The Aquarian Press.
de Domizio, L., Durini, B., & Tomassoni, I. (1984). Incontro Con Beuys. Pescara:
D.I.A.C. Editrice.
De Laruelle, J. (1997). Artists, Poets and Other Thinkers. In A. McCulloch (Ed.),
Double Dialogues:Conference with a Difference,1996 (pp. 7 - 12). Burwood,
Vic.: Deakin University.
Delamont, S., Atkinson, P., & Parry, O. (Eds.). (2000). The Doctoral Experience.
Success and Failure in Graduate School. London and New York: Falmer Press.
Delbo, C. (1995). Auschwitz and After (R. C. Lamont, Trans.). New Haven and
London: Yale University Press.
DeMott, R. (Ed.). (1989). John Steinbeck. Working Days. The Journals of the Grapes
of Wrath 1938 - 1941. New York: Viking.
Dennis, P., et al. (Ed.). (1995). The Oxford Companion to Australian Military
History. Melbourne: Oxford University Press.
DeSalvo, L., & Leaska, M. A. (Eds.). (1984). The Letters of Vita Sackville-West to
Virginia Woolf. London: Hutchinson.
209

Dept.of Veterans' Affairs. (2003). Australian War Memorial, London. Battle Names
and Place Names. Retrieved 12/11/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.dva.gov.au/commem/oawg/memorials/London/
Dewey, J. ((1934) 1980). Art as Experience. New York: A Perigee Book.
Di Mauro, S. (2003). Concept to Resolution. Memorial Art and Architecture
(Seminar. Saturday 16 August 2003). Brisbane: Queensland College of Art
Griffith University.
Dickhoff, W. (2000). After Nihilism. Essays on Contemporary Art: Cambridge
University Press.
Dienske, I. (2000). Sources: Beyond Words: On the Experience of the Ineffable.
Retrieved 14/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.phenomenologyonline.com/articles/template.cfm?ID=1.
Dillon, M. C. (Ed.). (1997). Ecart &Differance. Merleau-Ponty and Derrida on
Seeing and Writing. New Jersey: Humanities Press.
Dils, A., & Flanders Crosby, J. (2001). Dialogue in Dance Studies Research. Dance
Research Journal, 33(1, Summer), 62 - 81.
Dissanayake, E. (1988). What Is Art For? Seattle: University of Washington Press.
Dissanayake, E. (2000). Art and Intimacy How the Arts Began. Seattle and London:
A McLellan Book University of Washington Press.
Dissanayke, E. (1992). Homo Aestheticus. Where Art Comes from and Why. New
York: The Free Press.
Ditessa, R. (n.d.) George Lambert. Setting the Standard. Artist's Palette, 16 - 21.
Ditessa, R.(n.d.) Art in the War Zone. Artist's Palette, 8 - 15.
Dormer, P. (1994). The Art of the Maker. London: Thames and Hudson.
Doub Erickson, J., & Sproul, A. (1966). Print Making without a Press. New York:
Van Nostrand Reinhold Company.
Douglas, A., & Wenger, N. (Eds.). (1996). Artists' Stories. Sunderland: AN
Publications.
Downie, R. S. (Ed.). (2000). The Healing Arts. An Oxford Illustrated Anthology.
Oxford: Oxford University Press.
Doyle, J., & Daly, P. (1999). AAVE Australian Art of the Vietnam Experience.
AAVE Home Page. Retrieved 14/10/2002, from the World Wide Web:
idun.itsc.adfa.edu.au/SOE/VIETNAM/aavecat.html.
Dudley-Marling, C. (1996). On Becoming. In L.Heshusius & K.Ballard (Eds.), From
Positivism to Interpretivism and Beyond. Tales of Transformation in Educational
and Social Research (pp. 32 -37). New York and London: Teachers College
Press, Teachers College, Columbia University.
210

Dudley-Marling, C. (1996). Acknowledging the Why of Method. In L.Heshusius &


K.Ballard (Eds.), From Positivism to Interpretivism and Beyond. Tales of
Transformation in Educational and Social Research (pp. 108 -114). New York
and London: Teachers College Press. Teachers College, Columbia University.
Duff, S. K. (2000). A Forced Life. Retrieved 7/10, 2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.thebody.com/bp/apr00/duff.html
Dunlop, E. E. ([1986] 1995). The War Diaries of Weary Dunlop. Volume 1: Sage
1995, Thomas Nelson 1986.
Dupont, A. (2001, 9th January). AIDS Is an Enemy to Us All. The Australian, p.17.
Dutton, G. (1964). Russell Drysdale. London: Thames and Hudson.
Dutton, G. (Ed.). (1992). Artists' Portraits. Canberra: National Library of Australia.
Dutton, G. (1997). Russell Drysdale 1912 -81. Melbourne: National Gallery of
Victoria.
Dutton, N. (1995). Firing. Sydney: Editions Tom Thompson.
Eagleton, T. ( 1997). Literary Theory. An Introduction. (Second Edition Ed.).
Oxford: Blackwell Publishers.
Eastaugh, S. (2003). Polar Art Studio: Diary #4. Retrieved 8/03/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/arts/visual/stories/s798481.htm.
Eatherly, C. ( 1989). Burning Conscience. The Case of the Hiroshima Pilot, Claude
Eatherly, Told in His Letters to Gunther Anders, with a Postscript for American
Readers by Anders (1989 Ed.). New York: Paragon House.
Edric, R. (1997). In Desolate Heaven. London: Anchor.
Edwards, D. (1991). Race, Death & Gender in the Anzac Memorial. Art and
Australia, 28(4, Winter), 473 - 481.
Edwards, D. (1997). Materials as Landscape. Rosalie Gascoigne. Sydney: Art
Gallery of New South Wales. 14 November 1997 - 11 January 1998.
Eliot, T. S. (1983). Four Quartets. London: Faber & Faber.
Encounter, A. (2003). At the Edge of the Abyss. David Busch. Retrieved 12/12/2003,
from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/relig/enc/stories/s967705.htm.
Encounter, A. (2003). The Good Death. David Rutledge. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from
the World Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/rn/relig/enc/stories/s982746.htm.
Encounter, A. (2003). White Lines, White Crosses. David Busch. Retrieved
12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/relig/enc/stories/s1000854.htm.
211

Encounter, A. (2003). Pondering All These Things. Carmel Howard. Retrieved


12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/relig/enc/stories/s995917.htm.
Erikson, K. (1995). Notes on Trauma and Community. In C. Caruth (Ed.), Trauma.
Explorations in Memory (pp. 183 - 199). Baltimore and London: The John
Hopkins University Press.
Faas, H., & Page, T. (Eds.). (1997). Requiem by the Photographers Who Died in
Vietnam and Indochina. London: Jonathan Cape.
Fanning, P. (1993). Significant Others: Creativity and Intimate Partnership. London:
Thames and Hudson.
Feaver, W. (2001, Wednesday 10 January 2001). Studying the Art of War. The
Australian Financial Review, p. 27.
Felman, S., & Laub, D. M. D. (1992). Testimony. Crises of Witnessing in Literature,
Psychoanalysis, and History. New York and London: Routledge.
Feneley, S. (1998). Albert Tucker:Pictures from Life. ABC The Space Visual Arts.
Retrieved 23/11/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.abc.net.au/arts/visual/stories/s424393.htm.
Feneley, S. (2002). William Yang and the Art of Society. ABC Radio National Visual
Arts/Features. Retrieved 10/10/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.abc.net.au/arts/visual/stories/s424388.htm.
Fern, L. (1995). William Robinson. Sydney: Craftsman House.
Field, M. (2002). NZ Apologises for Colonial Blunders but Samoa Says It Thanks but
Not Necessary. Retrieved, 2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://2003.97.34.63/samoa3.htm.
Field, R. S., & Fine, R. E. (1987). A Graphic Muse. Prints by Contemporary
American Women. New York: Hudson Hills Press, New York in association with
the Mount Holyoke College Art Museum.
Flay, J. (Ed.). (1992). Christian Boltanski. Books, Printed Matter, Ephemera 1966 -
1991. Koln: Verlag der Buchhandlung Walter Konig.
Florida, R. The Rise of the Creative Class and How It's Transforming Work, Leisure,
Community and Everyday Life. Retrieved 29/11/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.creativeclass.org/sample.htm.
Florman, S. C. (1976,1994). The Existential Pleasures of Engineering (Second
Edition ed.). London and New York: Souvenier Press.
Ford, A. (2003). Les Murray and the Song Company. Retrieved 19/07/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/rn/music/mshows/s870882.htm.
Forrester, S. (1999). Taking Time to Look. Ken McFadyen, Vietnam War Official
Artist. Wartime. Official Journal of Australian War Memorial;(6), pp.50 - 53.
212

Fortescue, E. (2001, Saturday, October 20,). Mining for Good. The Courier Mail,p.
+4.
Foss, B. (1998). The War and the Visual Arts. In L. E. Lee (Ed.), World War 11 in
Asia and the Pacific and the War's Aftermath, with General Themes. A Handbook
of Literature and Research. Westport: Greenwood Press.
Franck, F. (1973). The Zen of Seeing. Drawing as Meditation. New York: Vintage
Books.
Franck, F. (1985). Echoes from the Bottomless Well. New York: Vintage Books.
Freadman, R. (2001). Threads of Life. Autobiography and the Will. Chicago,
London: University of Chicago Press.
Free, R., in collaboration with Lloyd Rees. (1990). Lloyd Rees. The Last Twenty
Years. Roseville: Craftsman House.
Freedman, A. (2003). Death, Men, and Modernism. Trauma and Narrative in British
Fiction from Hardy to Woolf. New York & London: Routledge.
Freedman, R. (1996). Life of a Poet: Rainer Maria Rilke. Evanston, Illinois:
Northwestern University Press.
Friend, D. (2002). The Diaries of Donald Friend, Vol.1. Canberra: National Library
of Australia.
Fry, G. (1982). Australian Official War Art and Artists. Journal of Australian War
Memorial, 1(October), 24 - 31.
Fry, G. (1998). George Gittoes. Sydney: Craftsman House, G+B Arts International.
Fukumoto, A. (2001). Bodies of Memory: Narratives of War in Postwar Japanese
Culture, 1945-1970 [Review of book by Igarashi Yoshikuni]. Retrieved 12/12/
2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.ess.uwe.ac.uk/ggenocide/reviewsw102.htm.
Fussell, P. (1975). The Great War and Modern Memory. London: Oxford University
Press.
Fussell, P. (1989). Wartime. Understanding and Behavior in the Second World War.
New York. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
Gambrell, J. (1994). Sarajevo: Art in Extremis. Art in America, May, 100 - 105.
Gammage, B. (1974). The Broken Years. Australian Soldiers in the Great War.
Victoria: Penguin Books.
Gammage, B. (1994). The Broken Years. Journal of Australian War Memorial,
24(April), 34 - 35.
Garfield, C. (1989). Shanti's Birth and Rebirth. Part 1: 1974 - 1981- the Early Years.
Ankali Project Newsletter, October, 5 - 8.
213

Garfield, C. (1989). Shanti's Birth and Rebirth. Part 1: 1974 - 1981 - the Early Years
(Cont). Ankali Project Newsletter, November, 4 - 8.
Geczy, A. (1996). Art and Masculinity after Auschwitz after Bosnia. The Work of
Dennis Del Favero,1995. Artlink, 16(1), 20 - 23.
Genocchio, B. (2003, January 25-26). Traditional Abstracts. The Weekend
Australian, p. R 13.
Gere, D. (2002). Writing an Orbituary for AIDS. Dance Research Journal, 34(1,
Summer), 62 -68.
Gervasoni,C & S. Hayes. (1993). Artistic Insights. Australian Artists and Their
Diverse Use of Themes. Marrickville: Harcourt Brace Jovanovich.
Gilchrist, M. (1991). The Intimate Experience: Denials & Distortions, The Intimate
Experience. Selected Australian Women Artists' Images of Women 1946 -1991
(pp. 9 - 11). Sydney: University of New South Wales.
Gillies, M. (2000). Every Eight Seconds: AIDS Revisited. Retrieved 14 November,
2003, from the World Wide Web: http://www.naf.org.au/gillies2.rtf
Gillis, J. R. (Ed.). (1994). Commemorations. The Politics of National Identity.
Princeton, New Jersey: Princeton University Press.
Gilmore, L. (2001). The Limits of Autobiography. Trauma and Testimony. Ithaca and
London: Cornell University Press.
Gilmour, P. (1986). Ken Tyler. Master Printer and the American Print Renaissance.
Canberra.ACT.: Australian National Gallery.
Goddard, M. (1991). Mapping a Plague. Ankali Project Newsletter, 5 - 6.
Goffman, E. (1961). Asylums. Essays on the Social Situation of Mental Patients and
Other Inmates. Great Britain: Pelican.
Goldberg, V. (1988). Bourke-White. International Center of Photography. United
Technologies Corporation.
Goldhagen, D. J. (2002). A Moral Reckoning. The Role of the Catholic Church in the
Holocaust and Its Unfulfilled Duty of Repair. Little, Brown.
Golding, J. (2000). Paths to the Absolute. Mondrian, Malevich, Kandinsky, Pollock,
Newman, Rothko. And Still. Princeton, New Jersey: Princeton University Press.
National Gallery of Art. Washington,D.C.
Goodwin, J. (n.d.). Redajustment Problems among Vietnam Veterans. The Etiology
of Combat - Related Post - Traumatic Stress Disorders. Cincinnati, OH: Disabled
American Veterans.
Gotlib, I. H., & Wheaton, B. (Eds.). (1997). Stress and Adversity over the Life
Course. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Gott, T. (1986). Backlash. The Australian Drawing Revival 1976 -1986. National
Gallery of Victoria.
214

Gott, T. (Ed.). (1994). Don't Leave Me This Way: Art in the Age of AIDS. Canberra:
National Gallery of Australia.
Gott, T. (1994). Grief and the Gay Community. Artlink, 14(4 Summer), 16 - 21.
Gott, T. (2002). Don't Forget to Remember the Art of David McDiarmid. Art
Monthly Australia, 152(August), 33 - 35.
Gouma-Peterson, T. (1999). Miriam Schapiro. Shaping the Fragments of Art and
Life. Harry N.Abrams Inc. Publishers in association with the Polk Museum of Art.
Govinda, L. A. (1970). The Way of the White Clouds. A Buddhist Pilgrim in Tibet.
Berkeley: Shambhala.
Graves, R. (1929). Goodbye to All That. London: Penguin Books.
Gray, A. Recent Acquisitions. Works by Albert Tucker and Yasushi Santa. Journal
of Australian War Memorial, 52 - 53.
Gray, A. (1991). Four Printmakers at War. Dix.Nash.Dyson.Laboureur. Art and
Australia, 28(4, Winter), 482 - 487.
Gray, A. (1991). Artist's Visions of Vietnam, Vietnam Days (pp. 145 - 171).
Melbourne: Penguin Books, Australia.
Gray, A. (1991). Art & War. Art and Australia, 28(4, Winter), 473 - 475.
Gray, A. (1993). Gulf War Art. Art and Australia, 31(2 Summer), 208 - 215.
Gray, S. (1998, November). Exhibiting Meaning: Creating Cultural Meaning
through Exhibition Development and Design. Retrieved 14/10/2002, from the
World Wide Web: www.gu.edu.au/centre/cmp/Papers_97/Gray.html.
Green, D. (1984, April 1981 to April 1984). Scars of War on Our Heart. Reprint
Booklet. The Age Education Unit, The Age Anzacs, 14.
Greene, G. (1971). A Sort of Life. Penguin Books.
Greene, J. M. & K. Shiva (Ed.). (2000). Witness. Voices from the Holocaust. New
York: The Free Press.
Griffin, M. (1986). Murray Griffin. Interview with Murray Griffin, Painter and
Anthroposphist (Sound Recording). National Library of Australia.
Griffin, M. V. Exhibition of Paintings and Drawings by V.Murray Griffin. Australian
War Memorial.
Griffin, M. V. (1992). Changi, Murray Griffin 1903 -1992. With an Introduction by
Gavin Fry. Sydney: Edmund & Alexander.
Grimes, N. (1985). Anselm Kiefer. Art News, 84(7, September), 131 - 132.
Grisey, G. (1987). Tempus Ex Machina: A Composer's Reflections on Musical Time.
Contemporary Music Review, 2(Part 1), 239 - 275.
215

Grishin, S. John Olsen's and John Wolseley's Journals. Retrieved 25/07/2003, from
the World Wide Web:
http://www.nla.gov.au/events/donaldfriend/papers/sgrishin.html.
Grishin, S. (1994). Contemporary Australian Printmaking. An Interpretative History.
Roseville East, NSW: Craftsman House.
Grishin, S. (1998). John Wolseley. Land Marks. Sydney: Craftsman House G+B Arts
International.
Grishin, S. (2003). John Wolseley: A Self-Portrait of a Bushfire (Catalogue The
Memory of Fire 25 July - 31 August 2003 ed.). Australian Galleries.
Grossman, D. ([1995] 1996). On Killing. The Psychological Cost of Learning to Kill
in War and Society. London: Back Bay Books.
Guinea, A. P. N. (2002). HIV/AIDS Education. Retrieved 28/11/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.adra.org.pg/aids.html.
Gumpert, L. (1994). Christian Boltanski. Paris: Flammarion.
Guttenplan, D. D. (2001). The Holocaust on Trial. History, Justice and the David
Irving Libel Case. London: Granta Books.
Haebich, A. (2003). Charmed Circles:Fact, Fantasy and Fraud on Australian
Frontiers.Unpublished manuscript, Brisbane.
Hamilton, J.(2003) Women Artists' Responses to HIV/AIDS. Unpublished Doctor of
Philosophy. University of Western Sydney.
Hamlin, D. C. (2001). A Story of Hope. The Hospital by the River. Sydney:
Macmillan.
Hammond, M., Howarth, J., & Keat, R. (1991). Understanding Phenomenology.
Oxford: Blackwell.
Hand, S. (Ed.). (1989, 1992). The Levinas Reader. Emmanuel Levinas. Oxford UK &
Cambridge USA: Blackwell.
Hannoosh, M. (1995). Painting and the Journal of Eugene Delacroix. Princeton,
New Jersey: Princeton University Press.
Hanrahan, M. (2001). Literacy Learning as Involving Both Skills and Relationships:
Implications for the Development of Science Literacy. Paper presented at the
Australasian Science Education Research Association, Sydney.
Harding, N. (2002). Francisco Goya. Retrieved 28/02/2003, from the World Wide
Web: http://www.rexirwin.com/art/goya/goya.html
Hart, B. (1997). Fine Art Research into the Digital Image. The Pragmatics of Gaining
Research Funding Whilst Still Producing Art. In A. McCulloch (Ed.), Double
Dialogues: Conference with a Difference,1996 (pp. 59 - 66): Deakin University.
Hart, D. (1988). John Olsen. Encounters with Drawing. Collingwood, Vic.:
Australian Galleries.
216

Haskell, D. (Ed.). (1991). Kenneth Slessor. Poetry, Essays, War Despatches, War
Diaries, Journalism, Autobiographical Material and Letters: University of
Queensland Press.
Hass, A. (1995). The Aftermath. Living with the Holocaust. Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press.
Hawke, D. (1993). Phenomonography as a Research Approach in Art Education. The
Journal of the Australian Institute of Art Education, 17(No.1 Spring), 7-13.
Hawke, D. (1996). Autobiography as an Approach to Research of Artistic Practice.
The Journal of the Australian Institute of Art Education, 19(No.3 Summer), 31-
36.
Hawley, J. (1993). Encounters with Australian Artists. St Lucia: University of
Queensland Press.
Hayashi, M. (1997). The Landscape of Place and Memory. Cleveland Center for
Contemporary Art, 1997. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.csuohio.edu/art_photos/docs/statement.html.
Heaven, J. (1994). Mourning: Traditions, Symbols and Meaning. Artlink, 14(4
Summer), 12 - 15.
Heinrich, C. (2000). Claude Monet 1840 - 1926. Cologne: Taschen.
Hellman, L. (Ed.). (1955,1984). The Selected Letters of Anton Chekhov. London:
Picador. Pan Books.
Helmrich, M. Silence Echoes in the Hollow of the Hand. Judith Wright.Book works.
Hendrickson, P. (1996). The Living and the Dead. Robert McNamara and Five Lives
of a Lost War. Sydney: Vintage.
Hentschel, M., & Friedel, H. (1998). Gerhard Richter. London: Anthony d'Offay
Gallery.
Herbert, R. L. (Ed.). ((1964) 1986). Modern Artists on Art. Ten Unabridged Essays.
New York: Prentice Hall Press.
Herrera, H. (1992). Frida Kahlo. The Paintings. London: Bloomsbury.
Heshusius, L.& Ballard, K. (Ed.). (1996). From Positivism to Interpretivism and
Beyond. Tales of Transformation in Educational and Social Research. New York
and London: Teachers College Press, Teachers College, Columbia University.
Heshusius, L. & Ballard, K. (1996). Afterthoughts. In L. Heshusius & K. Ballard
(Ed.), From Positivism to Interpretivism and Beyond. Tales of Transformation in
Educational and Social Research (pp. 169 - 177).
Hetherington, J. (MCMXXXX111). The Australian Soldier. A Portrait. Sydney:
F.H.Johnston Publishing Company.
Hewitt, H. V. (2002). Patrick White, Painter Manque. Paintings, Painters and Their
Influence of His Writings. Carlton,Victoria: The Miegunyah Press.
217

Hibberd, D. (2002). Wilfred Owen. A New Biography. London: Weidenfeld &


Nicolson.
Higonnet, M. R. (Ed.). (1999). Lines of Fire. Women Writers of World War 1. New
York: A Plume Book.
Hill, P. (2002). Philip Hunter, Tim Olsen Gallery. Retrieved 22/07/2003, from the
World Wide Web:
http://www.smh.com.au/articles/2002/11/05/1036308306941.html.
Hjerter, K. (1986). Doubly Gifted. The Author as Visual Artist. New York: Harry N.
Abrams Inc.
Hodge, A. (2003, Wednesday, 12 November). Born with a Hangover...For Life. The
Australian, pp. 1,6.
Hodgin, P. (1988). "On Going Back for a Look", Down the Lake with Half a Chook.
Sydney: ABC Publications.
Hodgkin, H. (1985). Prints 1977 to 1983. The Tate Gallery.
Hoffie, P. (1997). The Irrepressible Imprecision of Emotion. Artlink, 17(2 June), 32 -
35.
Holland, P. D., Walter. (2000). A Poetry of Crisis, a Poetry of Witness. Retrieved
7/10/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.thebody.com/bp/apr00/holland.html.
Honig, E. (1966). The Nazi Drawings of Mauricio Lasansky: Philadelphia Museum
of Art.
Hooton, J. (1993). Life-Lines in Stormy Seas: Some Recent Collections of Women's
Diaries and Letters. Australian Literary Studies, 16(1, May), 3 - 11.
Hopkins, B. (1999). The Essential Possibility of Phenomenology. Retrieved
8/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://gateway.library.qut.edu.au:2052/pqdlink?Ver=1&Exp=07-01-
2003&FMT=TG&.
Howlett, J. & Mengham, R. (Eds.). (1994). The Violent Muse. Violence and the
Artistic Imagination in Europe 1910 - 1939. Manchester and New York:
Manchester University Press.
Hughes, R. (2003). Goya. The Harvill Press: London.
Hunsberger, M. R. (2000). Sources: The Encounter of Reader and Text. Retrieved
14/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.phenomenologyonline.com/articles/template.cfm?ID=378.
Hunter, P. A. (1999). House for Heraclitus. Unpublished Doctor of Philosophy,
Deakin University, Geelong.
Hutch, R. A. (1997). The Meaning of Lives. Biography, Autobiography, and the
Spiritual Quest. London and Washington: Cassell.
218

Huyssen, A. (1989). Anselm Kiefer: The Terror of History, the Temptation of Myth.
October, 48(Spring), 25 - 45.
Hynes, S. (1997). The Soldiers' Tale. Bearing Witness to Modern War. London:
Pimlico.
Igarashi, Y. (1999). Session 145: The End of Critique? Histories of Politicized
Culture in 1960s Japan. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.aasianst.org/absts/1999abst/japan/j-145.htm.
Ignatieff, M. (1998). The Warrior's Honor. Ethnic War and Modern Conscience.
London: Chatto & Windus.
Iijima, S. (Ed.). (1995). After Hiroshima - Message from Contemporary Art.
Hiroshima: Hiroshima city Museum of Contemporary Art.
Ikegami, K. (1986 1990). Japanese Bookbinding. Instructions from a Master
Craftsman. New York. Weatherhill. Tokyo
"I'm over it!" (1994). I'm over It! Talkabout, May, 12 - 14.
Islands, Pacific.CC. (2003). PNG: Teacher Gave 15-Year-Old Student AIDS. Pacific
Magazine and Islands Business. Retrieved 28/11/2003, from the World Wide
Web: http://www.pacificislands.cc/pina/pinadefault.php?urlpinaid=9594.
Issacs, P. (1996). 'Disability and the Education of Persons'. In F.Rizvi &
C.Christensen (Eds.). Disability and the Dilemmas of Education and Justice.
Milton Keynes: Open University Press.
Ivan Doherty Gallery. (1991). The Intimate Experience. Selected Australian Women
Artists' Images of Women 1946 - 1991. Sydney: University of New South Wales.
Ivan Dougherty Gallery. (2002). With and without You Re - Visitations of Art in the
Age of AIDS. Ivan Dougherty Gallery, The University of New South Wales,
Sydney. Retrieved 28/10/2002, from the World Wide Web:
James, D. (1993). Dog Tags: An International Collection of Paintings, Poetry and
Sculpture by Vietnam Veterans. New Art Examiner, 20(5, January), 33 - 34.
James, R. (1994). Death in Excess: Nuclear Imagery. Artlink, 14(4, Summer), 38 -
40.
Jenner, J. (1990). Dear Life. Dispatches from the AIDS Front Line. Good Weekend.
The Sydney Morning Herald Magazine, 20 - 29.
Jennings, S. (Ed.). (1992). Dramatherapy. Theory and Practice 2. London:
Tavistock/Routledge.
Johnson, G. A. (Ed.). (1993). The Merleau-Ponty Aesthetics Reader: Philosophy and
Painting. Evanston, Illinois: Northwestern University Press.
Johnson, K. (1993). Art and Memory. Art in America, 81(11,November), 90 - 99.
John-Steiner, V. (1997). Notebooks of the Mind. New York and Oxford: Oxford
University Press.
219

Johnston, J. (1985). The Railway Station Man: Viking Press.


Jolly, M. (1996). 'Sorely Tried Men'. The Male Body in World War Two Australia.
Artlink, 16(1), 50 - 55.
Jones, C. (1998). An Authentic Life. Finding Meaning and Spirituality in Everyday
Life. Sydney: ABC Books.
Jones, C. (1999). The Man Who Saw Too Much. Retrieved 30/06/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/austory/series4/9926text.htm.
Jordens, A.-M. (1987). A Dream Turns Sour. Official War Artists in Vietnam.
Journal of the Australian War Memorial, 11(October), 17 - 24.
Joselit, D. (1999). Of War and Remembrance. Art in America, 87(5, May), 142 - 145.
Judah, M.-L. How Much Subjectivity Is Needed to Understand Our Lives
Objectively? Retrieved 13/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.alt.ualberta.ca/po/articles/textoriumtemplate.cfm?ID=415.
Jule, W. (Ed.). (1997). Sightlines. Printmaking and Image Culture. A Collection of
Essays and Images. Edmonton: University of Alberta Press.
Kaplan, H. (1994). Conscience and Memory. Meditations in a Museum of the
Holocaust. Chicago and London: The University of Chicago Press.
Kapuscinski, R. (1998,2001). The Shadow of the Sun. My African Life. London:
Allen Lane. The Penguin Press.
Karlinsky, S. (Ed.). (1973, 1999). Anton Chekhov's Life and Thought. Selected
Letters and Commentary. Evanston, Illinois: Northwestern University Press.
Keane, F. (2004) Killers, ABC Radio National. Four Corners.
Kekes, J. (1990). Facing Evil. Princeton, New Jersey: Princeton University Press.
Kelly, M. (1999). Vietnam Vets: The Art of War. Art in America, 87(9), 25.
Kelly, W. (Ed.). (2003). Art and Humanist Ideals: Contemporary Perspectives. With
Artworks Selected from the Collection of the Archive of Humanist Art. South
Yarra, Victoria: Macmillan.
Kempner, M. J. (1945). Pacific Front:Hospital. Vogue, 105, 109, 207.
Ker Conway, J. (1998). When Memory Speaks. Exploring the Art of Autobiography.
New York: Vintage Books.
Kernebone, F. (2003). Laurie Anderson on 'Happiness'. Retrieved 8/03/2003, from
the World Wide Web: http://abc.net.au/arts/performance/stories/s797452.htm.
Kershaw, A. (2003). The Bedford Boys. One Small Town's D-Day Sacrifice.
London: Simon & Schuster.
Kertess, K. (1992). Brice Marden. Paintings and Drawings. New York: Harry
N.Abrams,Inc.,Publishers.
220

King, M. (1996). Concerning the Spiritual in 20th Century Art and Science. Part
One, Two and Three. Retrieved 30/07/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://web.ukonline.co.uk/mr.king/writings/asats/csasa.html.
King, M. (2000). Wrestling with the Angel. A Life of Janet Frame. Sydney: Picador.
Pan Macmillan Australia.
Kinnane, G. (1996). The War Art of Colin Colahan. Retrieved 18/06/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.awm.gov.au/journal/j28/j28-kinn.htm.
Kinnane, G. (1996). Colin Colahan. A Portrait. Melbourne: Melbourne University
Press.
Kitaj, R. B. (1989). First Diasporist Manifesto. London: Thames and Hudson.
Klepac, L. (1988). Judy Cassab: Portraits of Artists and Friends. Sydney: Beagle
Press.
Klepac, L. (Ed.). (2001). William Robinson 1987 - 2000. Sydney: The Beagle Press.
Koch, G. (1989). The Aesthetic Transformation of the Image of the Unimaginable:
Notes on Claude Lanzmann's Shoah. October, 48(Spring), 15 - 24.
Koch, G., Lang, L., & Antoine, J.-P. (1995). Gerhard Richter. Paris: Editions Dis
Voir.
Kornfield, J. (1994). A Path with Heart. A Guide through the Perils and Promises of
Spiritual Life. London: Rider Books.
Koval, R. (2002). The Sinfulness of Literature? Edna O'Brien. ABC Radio National.
Retrieved 27/11/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.abc.net.au/rn/arts/bwriting/stories/s685418.htm.
Koval, R. (2002). Ian McEwan. Retrieved 2/04/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/arts/bwriting/stories/s748141.htm.
Koval, R. (2002). Harold Pinter. Retrieved 2/04/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/arts/bwriting/stories/s748147.htm.
Koval, R. (2003). Joyce Carol Oates. Retrieved 29/01/2003, from the World Wide
Web: http://www.abc.net.au/rn/arts/bwriting/stories/s748705.htm.
Kramer, L. (2003). Foreword. In C. Bull (Ed.), While the World Sleeps. Writing from
the First Twenty Years of the Global Aids Plague (pp. xiii - xxiv). New York:
Thunder's Mouth Press.
Kuspit, D. (1996). Idiosyncratic Identities. Artists at the End of the Avant-Garde.
Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press.
Kuspit, D. (2000). The Rebirth of Painting in the Late Twentieth Century. Cambridge
UK: Cambridge University Press.
Lahey, J. (1984). The Last of the Anzacs: A Thin Line Stands Fast to a Slowly
Fading Memory. Reprint Booklet The Age Anzacs, 42, 25 - 28.
221

Lallemand, H. (1994). Monet. Impressions of Light. New York: Todtri Productions


Limited.
Lambourne, N. (1999). Production Versus Destruction: Art, World War 1 and Art
History. Art History, 22(3, September), 347 - 363.
Langer, L. L. (1998). Preempting the Holocaust. New Haven and London: Yale
University Press.
Lasansky, M. ((1966) 1976). The Nazi Drawings. Iowa City: University of Iowa
Press.
Latham, T. (2003). Managing Trauma. Retrieved 25/09/2003, from the World Wide
Web: http://www.abc.net.au/cgi-
bin/common/printfriendly.pl?http://www.abc.net.au/rn/talk.
Le Corbusier. (1960). My Work. London: The Architectural Press.
Lebert, S., & Lebert, N. ([2000] 2002). My Father's Keeper. The Children of the Nazi
Leaders - an Intimate History of Damage and Denial: Abacus.
Lee, L. E. (Ed.). (1998). World War 11 in Asia and the Pacific and the War's
Aftermath, with General Themes. A Handbook of Literature and Research.
Westport, Conneciticut. London: Greenwood Press.
Leese, P. (2003). Filming Shellshock: Remembrance of the Great War in the 1990s.
Retrieved 8/04/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://elt.britcoun.org.pl/british%20cinema/filming.htm.
Lemke, L. (2003). Letters to Wendy. Recollections of a Prisoner of War: Len Lemke.
Lemper, U. (2003). Rhyme and Punishment: An Interview with Ute Lemper.
Amazon.com. Retrieved 24/09/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.amazon.com/exec/obidos/tg/feature/-/34147/102-4670931-5522511.
Leslie, B. (2003). Dear Merilyn. Kent Town, SA.: Wakefield Press.
Levi, P. (1987). If This Is a Man. London: Abacus Books.
Levi, P. (1987). Moments of Reprieve. London: Abacus Books.
Levi, P. (1988). The Drowned and the Saved. London: Abacus.
Levinas, E. (1989,1992). The Servant and Her Master. In S. Hand (Ed.), The Levinas
Reader. Emmanuel Levinas (pp. 151 -159). Oxford UK & Cambridge USA:
Blackwell.
Levinas, E. (1993). Outside the Subject (M. B. Smith, Trans.). London: The Athlone
Press.
Levinas, E. (1998). On Thinking-of-the -Other Entre Nous. London: The Athlone
Press.
Levine, S. Z. (1994). Monet, Narcissims, and Self-Reflection. The Modernist Myth of
Self. Chicago, London: University of Chicago Press.
222

Levinson, J. (Ed.). (2001). Aesthetics and Ethics: Essays at the Intersection.


Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Liebmann, L. (1981). Anselm Kiefer at Marian Goodman. Art in America,
69(Summer), 125 - 126.
Lindqvist, S. (1992,1996). "Exterminate All the Brutes". London: Granta Books.
Lingis, A. (1994). The Community of Those Who Have Nothing in Common.
Bloomington and Indianapolis: Indiana University Press.
Lingis, A. (2003). The Immoralist. In E.Wyschogrod & G.McKenny (Eds.), The
Ethical (pp. 197 - 216). Oxford: Blackwell Publishing.
Little, J. (2003). The Man Who Saw Too Much. David Brill, Combat Cameraman.
Sydney: Hodder.
Livingstone, M. (1981,1987,1996). David Hockney. London: Thames and Hudson.
Lomax, E. (1995). The Railway Man. London: Vintage.
Londey, P. (1994). The Peacekeeping Exhibition. Journal of Australian War
Memorial, 24(April), 44 - 45.
Londey, P. (1999). Conflicted Commemoration. Japanese Museums and the War.
Wartime. Official Magazine of Australian War Memorial;, Winter(6), 34 - 37.
Longley, D. (1998). Printmaking with Photopolymer Plates. Adelaide: Illumination
Press.
Lopez-Pedraza, R. (1996). Anselm Kiefer `after the Catastrophe'. London: Thames
and Hudson.
Lowe, J. (Ed.). (1999). Stella Bowen. Drawn from Life. A Memoir. Sydney: Picador.
Loxley, A. (1994). Death: A Post-Mortem. Artlink, 14(4,Summer), 62 - 66.
Lucas, A., & Gouriotis, C. (Eds.). (2000). Vietnam Voices. Australians & the
Vietnam War. Casula,N.S.W.: Casula Powerhouse Arts Centre.
Lucientes, F. G. Y. (1967). The Disasters of War. New York: Dover
Publications,Inc.
Lyas, C. (1997). Aesthetics. London: UCL Press.
Lynn, E. (1984). Judy Cassab:Places, Faces and Fantasies. Melbourne: Macmillan.
Lyssiotis, P. (1997). Feather and Prey: Masterthief Enterprises.
Ma, J. (2000). Armed Forces and Childhood Drawings. Art Instructor Shares
Imaginary Memories. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.asianweek.com/2000_03_30/ae_glemoriwaki.html.
MacDonald, V. (1997). Rosalie Gascoigne. In S. Bush (Ed.), Rosalie Gascoigne.
Sydney: Regaro.
223

Mackenzie, I. (1993). Terrible Beauty: Paul De Man's Retreat from the Aesthetic.
The Journal of Aesthetics and Art Criticism, 51(4, Fall), 551 - 560.
MacKenzie, S. P. (1998). Prisoners of War and Civilian Internees: The Asian and
Pacific Theaters. In L. E.Lee (Ed.), World War 11 in Asia and the Pacific and the
War's Aftermath, with General Themes. A Handbook of Literature and Research.
(pp. 172 - 182). Westport: Greenwood Press.
Maddock, B. (1992). Being and Nothingness: Bea Maddock: Work from Three
Decades. Canberra: Australian National Gallery.
Madjar, I., & Walton, J. A. (Eds.). (1999). Nursing and the Experience of Illness.
Phenomenology in Practice. London and New York: Routledge.
Madoff, S. H. (1987). Anselm Kiefer. A Call to Memory. Art News, 86(October),
125 - 130.
Mafe, D. (2002). Working Spaces. Art Practice in Progress. Kelvin Grove,
Queensland: Eyeline Publishing Limited.
Malvern, S. (1986). `War as It Is': The Art of Muirhead Bone, C.R.W.Nevinson and
Paul Nash, 1916 -17. Art History, 9(4), 488 - 515.
Malvern, S. (2001). War Tourisms: `Englishness', Art, and the First World War.
Oxford Art Journal, 24(1), 45 -66.
Margetson, D. (1994). Current Education Reform and the Significance of Problem-
Based Learning: Griffith University.
Mark, R. The AIDS Quilt: Another Dimension. Retrieved 7/10/2003, from the World
Wide Web: http://www.gwu.edu/~english/ccsc/Mark.htm.
Marsh, R. (1969). Monoprints for the Artist. London: Alec Tiranti.
Martin, A. (2000). Words and Silk: The Imaginary and Real Worlds of Gerald
Murnane. Retrieved 25/07/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.sensesofcinema.com/contents/00/5/words.html.
Martin, T. with an introduction by J.Phillips, (1990). New Zealand Images of War.
Palmerston North: The Manawatu Art Gallery.
Maslach, C. (1982). Burnout. The Cost of Caring. Englewood Cliffs, New Jersey:
Prentice-Hall,Inc.
Massey, D. (2000). Ethics as Ordeal, Queensland University of Technology,
Carseldine campus.
Matsakis, A. (1988). Vietnam Wives. Women and Children Surviving Life with
Veterans Suffering Post Traumatic Stress Disorder. Woodbine House.
May, T. (Ed.). (1997). Twentieth Century Continental Philosophy. Upper Saddle
River, New Jersey: Prentice Hall.
224

May, W. T. (1992). Philosopher as Researcher and/or Begging the Question(S).


Studies in Art Education. A Journal of Issues and Research, 33(4. Summer), 226 -
243.
Mc Bride, D. J. (2003). Pacific: HIV/AIDS Pandemic Threat to Oz. Retrieved
28/11/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/asiapacific/location/pacific/GAPlocPacificStories_972256.
htm.
McAuslan, J. (1983). Eric Thake, 1904 -82. Journal of Australian War Memorial,
2(April), 17 - 18.
McClatchy, J. D. (Ed.). (1988). Poets on Painters. Essays on the Art of Painting by
Twentieth-Century Poets. Berkley and Los Angeles: University of California
Press.
McCormack, G., & Nelson, H. (1993). The Burma - Thailand Railway. Allen &
Unwin.
McCrossin, J. (2002). William Yang:Feature Interview. ABC Radio National Life
Matters. Retrieved 10/10/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.abc.net.au/rn/talks/lm/stories/s696813.htm.
McCulloch, A. (Ed.). (1997). Double Dialogues. Conference with a Difference.1996:
Deakin University.
McCulloch, A.& R.Goodrich. (2002). Resuming the Dialogue: Rhizomic
Actualisations. Retrieved 28/02/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.doubledialogues.com/Issue_two/resuming.htm.
McDonald, N., & Brune, P. (1998). 200 Shots. Damien Parer, George Silk and the
Australians at War in New Guinea. Sydney: Allen & Unwin.
McEachern, D. (1984). On the Phenomenology of Writing. Phenomenology +
Pedagogy, 2(No.1.), 276 -286.
McGregor, K. (Ed.). (2002). William Creek & Beyond. Australian Artists Explore
the Outback. Sydney: Craftsman House.
McHugh, S. (1993). Minefields and Miniskirts. Australian Women and the Vietnam
War. Sydney. Auckland. New York. Toronto. London: Doubleday.
McHugh, S. (1999). Shelter from the Storm. Bryan Brown, Samoan Chieftains and
the Little Matter of a Roof over Our Heads. Sydney: Allen & Unwin in
conjunction with the NSW Federation of Housing Association.
McKechnie, S. (1998). Thinking Dancing: Matters of Art,Value,Doing and Knowing.
Dance Forum (Spring/Summer), 20 - 22.
McKernan, M. (1994). 'Children of the Holocaust'. Journal of Australian War
Memorial, 24(April), 42 - 43.
McKernan, M. (2001). This War Never Ends. The Pain of Separation and Return.
St.Lucia: University of Queensland Press.
225

McKew, M. (2001, 22 May). Marion Halligan. The Bulletin, 54 - 56.


McLean, S. (2003, 20 Sept.). Life Is So Much More Than a Cabaret. Retrieved
24/09/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.couriermail.news.com.au/common/story_page/0,5936,7311085%5E76
42.
McManners, H. (1994). The Scars of War. London: Harper Collins.
McWilliams, M. (1995). Order out of Chaos: "Burnt Whole: Contemporary Artists
Reflect on the Holocaust". The New Art Examiner, 22(8,April), 12 - 17.
Melia, P. (Ed.). (1995). David Hockney. Manchester and New York: Manchester
University Press.
Mendelssohn, J. (1994). Love, Death and the Long Goodbye. The Bulletin, 83.
Mendelssohn, J. (2000). Conflict and Tradition: Australian Art and the Viet Nam
War. In A. Lucas & C. Gouriotis (Eds.), Viet Nam Voices. Australians & the Viet
Nam War (pp. 26 - 39). Casula. N.S.W.: Casula Powerhouse Arts Centre.
Merleau-Ponty, M. (1992). Phenomenology of Perception (Trans.by C. Smith).
London. New Jersey: Routledge. The Humanities Press.
Merleau-Ponty, M. (2002). The Primacy of Perception and Its Philosophical
Consequences (Trans. by J.M.Edie). In D.Moran & T. Mooney (Eds.), The
Phenomenology Reader (pp. 436 - 459). London and New York: Routledge.
Merleau-Ponty, M. C. (1994). The Visibility of Self-Portraiture. In H. J. Silverman
(Ed.), Textualities between Hermeneutics and Deconstruction. New York and
London: Routledge.
Michaels, E. (1990). Unbecoming. An AIDS Diary. Rose Bay. N.S.W.: EM Press.
Michaels, E. (1994). Bad Aboriginal Art. Tradition, Media, and Technological
Horizons. St.Leonards: Allen & Unwin.
Michiko, Y. A., & Darness, M. B. (1981). As the Japanese See It. Past and Present.
Honolulu: University of Hawaii Press.
Midgley, M. (1989). Wisdom, Information, and Wonder. What Is Knowledge For?
London, New York: Routledge.
Midgley, M. (2001). Wickedness. A Philosophical Essay. London and New York:
Routledge.
Miller, J. (Ed.). (1992). On Suicide. Great Writers on the Ultimate Question. San
Francisco: Chronicle Books.
Miller, L. (1945). "Believe It" Germans Are Like This. Vogue, 105, 102 - 107, 192 -
103.
Miller, R. (1999). Art Therapists Help Patients Paint Bright New Vistas. Retrieved
1/07/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.arttherapy.org/aboutata/arttherapynews.htm.
226

Minchinton, M. (2002). The World Is Turning to Pus: A Keynote Provocation.


Retrieved 28/02/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.doubledialogue.com/Issue_two/minchinton.htm.
Minear, R. H. (Ed.). (1986). Women against War. Compiled by Women's Division of
Soka Gakkai. Tokyo, New York and San Francisco: Kodansha International Ltd.
Mizzi, D. (1984). Soft Attack. Artists against Militarism. Surry Hills: Artspace.
Modjeska, D. (1994). The Orchard. Sydney: Picador. Pan Macmillan.
Modjeska, D. (1999). Stravinsky's Lunch. Sydney,N.S.W.: Picador.
Modra, H. M. (1995). Silence and Possibility. Paper presented at the 2nd Religion,
Language and the Arts Conference, Australian Catholic University, North Sydney,
Jan, 5 -8, 1995.
Mollison, J. H., Steven. (1997). Rosalie Gascoine. In Her Own Words, Rosalie
Gascoigne. Material as Landscape. Sydney: Art Gallery of New South Wales 14
November,1997 - 11 January,1998.
Moore, A. (Artist). (15 -16 April 1945). [Black & white photograph]. Australian War
Memorial
Moore, A. (Artist). (1945). [Black & white photograph]. Australian War Memorial.
Moore, A. (Artist). (1945). [Black & white photograph]. Australian War Memorial.
Moore, A. (Artist). (1945). [Black & white photograph]. Australian War Memorial.
Moore, A. (Artist). (1945). SS Guard Carrying Bodies at Belsen [Drawing].
Australian War Memorial.
Moore, A. (Artist). (1945). Bomb Damage, Hamburg [Drawing]. Australian War
Memorial.
Moore, A. (Artist). (1945). [Black & white photograph]. Australian War Memorial.
Moore, W. (1934). The Story of Australian Art. From the Earliest Known Art of the
Continent to the Art of Today (Vol. Vol.11). Sydney: Angus & Robertson
Limited.
Mora, M. (2000). Wicked but Virtuous. My Life. Melbourne: Viking.
Moran, D. & M., Timothy (Ed.). (2002). The Phenomenology Reader. London and
New York: Routledge.
Mosse, G. L. (1990). Fallen Soldiers. Reshaping the Memory of the World Wars.
New York. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
Mottram, P. Research into the Skills and Interventions Used by British Art Therapists
in Their Work with Client's Images. Retrieved 1/07/2003, from the World Wide
Web: http://www.derby.ac.uk/research/v-art/journal/articles/pmottram.html.
227

Mourning and Militancy (1998). Retrieved 7/10/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://members.aol.com/Slantgirl/101498.html
Moustakas, C. (1994). Phenomenological Research Methods. Thousand Oaks,
London, New Delhi: Sage Publications.
Munhall, P. L. (1994). Revisioning Phenomenology: Nursing and Health Science
Research. New York: National League for Nursing Press.
Munroe, A. (1994). Japanese Art after 1945. Scream against the Sky: Harry
N.Abrams, Inc.
National Centre for War-Related PTSD. (1999). Post Traumatic Stress Disorder
(PTSD) and War - Related Stress. West Heildelberg: National Centre for War-
Related PTSD.
Negus, G. (2002). Dr Peter Stanley. Retrieved 2/04/2003, from the World Wide
Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/dimensions/dimensions_in_time/Transcripts/s665777.htm.
Negus, G. (2002). Rememberance Vietnam. Retrieved 2/04/2003, from the World
Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/dimensions/dimensions_in_time/Transcripts/s724736.htm.
Neiman, S. (2002). Evil in Modern Thought. An Alternative History of Philosophy:
Princeton University Press.
Nelson, H. (1983). Travelling in Memories. Australian Prisoners of the Japanese,
Forty Years after the Fall of Singapore. Journal of Australian War Memorial,
3(October), 13 - 24.
Nevell, J. (1998). From the Bush to Changi and Back. Personal War Diary 1941 -
1945. Logan Village: Applause Press Pty Ltd.
Neylon, J. (1994). 600,000 Hours (Mortality) Conference Day 2. October 2,1994.
Artlink, 14(4, Summer), 67.
Neylon, J. (1994). Images of Death 600,000 Hours,(Mortality) Experimental Art
Foundation. Artlink, 14(4, Summer), 68 - 71.
Nielsen, T. W. (2000). `Hermeneutic Phenomenological Data Representation:
Portraying the Ineffable'. The Journal of the Australian Institute of Art Education,
23(No.1), 9-14.
Norris, K. (1996,1999). The Cloister Walk. Oxford: Lion Publishing plc.
North, I. (1994). In the Coil of Life's Hunger. James K Baxter 1926 -1972 Colin
McCahon 1919 - 1987. Artlink, 14(4, Summer), 41 -44.
Nouwen, H. J. M. (1979). Clowning in Rome: Reflections on Solitude, Celibacy,
Prayer and Contemplation. Garden City, New York: Image Books.
Nouwen, H. J. M. (1990). Reaching Out. London: Fount.
Nowra, L. (1999). The Twelfth of Never. Sydney: Picador. Pan Macmillan Australia.
228

Nussbaum, M. (2002). Beyond the Social Contract: Toward Global Justice. The
Tanner Lectures on Human Values. Australian National University 12 - 13
November 2002. Retrieved 28/10/2002, from the World Wide Web:
philrsss.anu/edu/au/tanner/.
Olsen, J. (1997). Drawn from Life. Potts Point N.S.W.: Duffy & Snellgrove.
Ondaatje, M. (2002). The Conversations. Walter Murch and the Art of Editing Film.
London: Bloomsbury Publishing.
Online, B. N. (2000). UK Politics. Short Criticises Vatican over AIDS Fight. BBC
News Online. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.bbc.co.uk/1/low/uk_politics/829303.stm.
Orwell, G. (1947). Why I Write. Web Projects @K1 Internet Publishing. Retrieved
14/10/2002, from the World Wide Web: www.k-1.com/Orwell/write.htm.
Osaka, E. (1999) Katsushige Nakahashi. Beyond the Future. The Third Asia-Pacific
Triennial of Contemporary Art. Queensland Art Gallery.pp.74-75.
Ostrow, R. (2001, November 24 -25). Now Life Is No Longer the Same. The
Weekend Australian, p. R23.
Page, T. (1995). Mid-Term Report. Thames and Hudson.
Pallotta-Chirarolli, M. (1992. c.1991). Someone You Know. Kent Town, S.Aust:
Wakefield Press.
Parviainen, J. (2002). Bodily Knowledge: Epistemological Reflections on Dance.
Dance Research Journal, 34(1, Summer), 11 -26.
Pear, D. (2000). HIV/AIDS and Literature: An Introduction. Public Symposium.
Every eight seconds: AIDS revisited. 29 -30 November, 2000. National Library of
Australia, Canberra]. Retrieved 10/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.naf.org.au/pear.rtf.
Pearce, B. (Ed.). (1990). Donald Friend, 1915 - 1989: Retrospective. Sydney: Art
Gallery of New South Wales.
Pearce, B. (1996,1997,1999). Margaret Olley. Sydney: The Art Gallery of New
South Wales and The Beagle Press.
Peek, I. D. (2003). One Fourteenth of an Elephant. Sydney: Macmillan Pan
Macmillan Australia.
Peppiatt, M. (1988). Zoran Music: Inspired by Dachau. Art International - New
Series 2(Spring), 22 -27.
Perez Garcia, D. Imagining Memory :Ulysses and a Journal of the Plague Years, or
the Novel of the Inventory. Retrieved, from the World Wide Web:
www.ucd.ie/~pages/99/articles/pergar.html.
229

Perl, J. (1995). War Stories(1995 Whitney Biennial; Trevor Winkfield Exhibition,


E.M.Donahoe, New York, New York). Electronic Library Australasia. Retrieved
15/04/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.elibrary.com/s/edumarkau/getdoc.cgi?id=224839482x127y50826wO&OID.
Perlmutter, D. a. K., Debra (Ed.). (1999). Reclaiming the Spiritual in Art.
Contemporary Cross-Cultural Perspectives. Albany: State University of New
York Press.
Peters, B. (1994). The Lived Experience of Partners of Ex-Prisoners of War of the
Japanese - a Phenomenological Study. Unpublished Masters thesis. MSS 1500.
Australian War Memorial.
Peters, B. (1996). The Life Experience of Partners of Ex-Pows of the Japanese.
Journal of the Australian War Memorial Issue 28. April 1996. Retrieved
10/09/2002, from the World Wide Web: www.awm.gov.au/journal/j28/j28-
petr.htm.
Peterson, M. (1997). Straight White Male. Performance Art Monologues. Jackson:
University Press of Mississippi.
Petit, J. ([1965] 1997). Le Corbusier Texts and Sketches for Ronchamp. Geneva:
Rene Bolle Reddat. Coopi.
Phillips, K. & Perry, C. (2002). The Journey from Self to Self: First Questions When
First Researching. Retrieved, 2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.doubledialogues.com/Issue_two/phillips.htm.
Pile, S. & Keith, M. (Eds.). (1997). Geographies of Resistance. London and New
York: Routledge.
Pilling, J. (1981). Autobiography and Imagination. London, Boston and Henley:
Routledge & Kegan Paul.
Pinchen, S. (1995). Pre-Conference Readings on Post Graduate Supervision
1995.Griffith University.
Pip, C. (1990). Body Work. Confessions from the Funeral Trade. Hale & Iremonger.
Pollan, M. (2001). The Botany of Desire. A Plant's-Eye View of the World. London:
Bloomsbury.
Pollio, H. (Ed.). (1997). The Phenomenology of Everyday Life. Cambridge, U.K.:
Cambridge University Press.
Prendeville, B. (1999). Merleau-Ponty, Realism and Painting: Psychophysical Space
and the Space of Exchange. Art History, 22(3), 364 - 388.
Probyn, E. (2002, Wednesday January 30). Thought Emotion. The Australian, p. 25.
230

Pullella, P. (2003). Vatican Defends Anti-Condom Stand on AIDS Day. Retrieved


12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.boston.com/yourlife/health/diseases/articles/2003/12/01/vatican_defen
ds_
Radio National, ABC. (2003). The Minders: War Artists. Retrieved 2/04/2003, from
the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/arts/sunmorn/stories/s820780.htm.
Radio National, ABC. (2003). Boo Chapple. Retrieved 18/06/2003, from the World
Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/arts/digital/stories/s870923.htm.
Read, P. (1996). Returning to Nothing. The Meaning of Lost Places. Melbourne:
Cambridge University Press.
Reed Business Information, I. (1994). Review: Wages of Guilt: Memories of War in
Germany and Japan. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.amazon.com/exec/obidos/tg/detail/-/0374285950/104-6753027-
3007941?
Rees, L., & Butel, E. (1988). Peaks and Valleys. An Autobiography. Sydney:
William Collins Pty Ltd.
Rees, L., & Free, R. (1987). Lloyd Rees. An Artist Remembers. Sydney: Craftsman
House.
Reid, A. (1990). The Australian Discovery of Indonesia, 1945. Journal of Australian
War Memorial, 17(October), 38 - 39.
Reid, B. (1966). Joy Hester. Draughtsman of Identity. Art and Australia, 4(1,June),
45 - 53.
Reid, B. (1992). Of Dark and Light. The Art of John Perceval. Melbourne: National
Gallery of Victoria.
Reid, C. (1990). Beyond Mourning. Art in America, 78, 51.
Reid, J. (Ed.). (1977). Australian Artists at War. Vol.11.1940 - 1970. Compiled from
the Australian War Memorial Collection. Sun Books Pty Ltd.
Reid, R., & and others. (1999). Laden, Fevered, Starved. The POWs of Sandakan
North Borneo, 1945: Commonwealth Department of Veterans' Affairs.
Reimer, B., & Smith, R. A. (Eds.). (1992). The Arts, Education and Aesthetic
Knowing. Ninety -First Yearbook of the National Society for the Study of
Education. Part 11. Chicago, Illinois: University of Chicago Press.
Rensch, E. (1991). Murray Griffin's Document of War. Art and Australia, 28(4,
Winter), 487 - 492.
Rensch, E. (1991). Drawings by Women Prisoners of War. Journal of Australian
War Memorial, 18(April), 60 - 61.
231

Report, P. I. (2003). PNG Sex Industry Raises HIV/AIDS Worries. Pacific Islands
Development Program/East-West Center. Retrieved 28/11/2003, from the World
Wide Web: http://pidp.eastwestcenter.org/pireport/2003/September/09-04-22.htm.
Review. (1993). Representations of the Intellectual: The 1993 Reith Lectures by
Edward W. Said. Retrieved 1/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.wkonline.com/a/Representations_of_the_Intellectual_The_1993_Reit
h_L.
Reynolds, R. (1987). A Perspective on Forma and Experience. Contemporary Music
Review, 2(Part 1), 277 - 308.
Rhodes, D. (2001). "Unimaginable Grief, Unexpected Joy": AIDS in Poetry.
Retrieved 7/10/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.thebody.com/bp/apr01/poetry.html.
Riley 11, C. A. (1998). The Saints of Modern Art. The Ascetic Ideal in
Contemporary Painting, Sculpture, Architecture, Music, Dance, Literature, and
Philosophy. Hanover and London: University Press of New England.
Rilke, C. (Ed.). (1985). Rainer Maria Rilke. Letters on Cezanne. London: Vintage.
Ritts, H. 20 Years: AIDS & Photography. Retrieved 14/07/2003, from the World
Wide Web: http://www.digitaljournalist.org/issue0106/voices_ritts.htm.
Romano, J. R. C. (1972). The Complete Printmaker. New York: The Free Press. A
Division of MacMillan Publishing Co.,Inc.
Rose, G. (1995). Love's Work. London: Chatto & Windus.
Rose, G. (1996). Mourning Becomes the Law. Cambridge: Cambridge University
Press.
Rosenthal, M. (1987). Anselm Kiefer. Chicago and Philadelphia: Philadelphia.
Rosenthal, N. (Ed.). (1990). Recent Paintings by George Basditz. London: Anthony
d'Offay Gallery.
Roskill, M. (Ed.). ([1963]1985). The Letters of Vincent Van Gogh. London:
Flamingo.
Ross, J. (1990). The Myth of Anzac. Journal of the Australian War Memorial,
16(April), 55 - 56.
Rowe, N. (28 Sept - 3 Oct). Deviation and Devotion: Francis Webb's `Homosexual'.
Paper presented at the The Fifth EASA Conference `Departures', University of
Toulouse-Le Mirail.
Rowe, N. (1997). Landing the Sacred. Paper presented at the Fourth International
Conference on Religion, Literature and the Arts, Australian Catholic University,
MacKillop Campus, North Sydney.
232

Ruddick, S., & Daniels, P. (Eds.). (1977). Working It Out. 23 Women Writers,
Artists, Scientists, and Scholars Talk About Their Lives and Work. New York:
Pantheon Books.
Russell, G. (1995). The Theatres of War: Performance, Politics, and Society, 1793 -
1815. Oxford: Oxford University and Clarendon Press, 1995.
Rutledge, D. (2003). Birds from Cages - Christians in Extreme Situations. Retrieved
21/09/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/relig/enc/stories/s936657.htm.
Sacks, O. (1985). The Man Who Mistook His Wife for a Hat. London: Picador.
Sacks, O. (1995). An Anthropologist on Mars. Seven Paradoxical Tales. New York:
Picador.
Safe, G. (2002, November 23-24). Where Art Thou. The Weekend Australian
Magazine, 37 - 43.
Saltzman, L. (1990). Anselm Kiefer and Art after Auschwitz. Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press.
Salusinszky, I. (2003, 27th October). The Australian, p. 12.
Salvestro, D. Interview with Janet Laurence. Retrieved 16/08/2003, from the World
Wide Web:
http://www.artwrite.cofa.unsw.edu.au/0020/2020pages/SalvestroJanetLaurence.ht
ml.
Sandler, M. (Ed.). (1997). The Confusion Era. Art and Culture of Japan During the
Allied Occupation. Seattle and London: Arthur M.Sackler Gallery, Smithsonian
Institute in association with University of Washington Press.
Sandler, M. H. (1996). The Living Artist. Matsumoto Shunsuke's Reply to the State.
Art Journal(Fall,1996), 74 - 82.
Sayers, A. (1994). What Is Indefinable Is Defined. Artlink, 14(4, Summer), 10-11.
Sayers, A. (2002). Stella Bowen: Art. Love & War. Retrieved 7/05/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.awm.gov.au/stella/talks/sayers.asp.
Sayre, H. M. (1999). Writing About Art. Third Edition. Saddle River, New Jersey:
Oregon State University. Prentice-Hall.
Scarry, E. (1985). The Body in Pain. The Making and Unmaking of the World. New
York. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
Scarry, E. (1999). Dreaming by the Book. New York: Farrar,Straus and Giroux.
Schellmann, J. & Bernd, K. (Ed.). (1980). Joseph Beuys Multiples. Catalogue
Raisonne. Multiples and Prints 1965 - 80. New York: New York University
Press.
233

Scott, C. E. (2003). Phenomenology: Ethics, Value, and the Subject. In E.


Wyschogrod & G. P. McKenny (Eds.), The Ethical (pp. 66 - 79). Oxford:
Blackwell Publishing.
Seaman, M. (1998). A Two-Inch House Brush and Charcoal. Retrieved 19/03/2003,
from the World Wide Web:
http://www.rmit.edu.au/browse/Media/News?Openline?1998/A%20two-
inch%20hous.
Sebald, W. G. (1996). The Emigrants. London: The Harvill Press.
Seddon, G. (1997). Landprints. Reflections on Place and Landscape. Melbourne:
Cambridge University Press.
See, T. H. (2001). Statement of Interpretation of the Holy See on the Adoption of the
Declaration of Commitment on HIV/AIDS [_20010]. Retrieved 12/12/2003, from
the World Wide Web:
http://www.vatican.va/roman_curia/secretariat_state/documents/rc_seg-st_doc.
Seear, L. (Ed.). (2001). Darkness & Light. The Art of William Robinson. South
Brisbane: Queensland Art Gallery.
Semin, D., Garb, Tamar and Kuspit,Donald. (1997). Christian Boltanski. London:
Phaidon Press Limited.
Shanahan, D. (2003, 12, November). Sacrifices of War Set Forever in Granite. The
Australian, pp. 1-2.
Sharpe, W. (2003). My Life in Pictures - Wendy Sharpe War Artist. ABC Radio.
Retrieved 29/01/2003, from the World Wide Web: http://www.abc.net.au/cig-
bin/common/printfriendly.pl?http://www.abc.net.au/dimens.
Shernoff, M. (1992). Loss and AIDS. People with AIDS Coalition Newsline,.
Retrieved 18/04/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.thebody.com/shernoff/loss.html.
Shernoff, M. (2001). "Once Again, We All Have a Lot of Grieving to Do". The Body:
An AIDS and HIV Information Resource. Retrieved 18/04/2002, from the World
Wide Web: www.thebody.com/bp/nov01/grieving.html.
Shimazu, N. (2003). Popular Representations of the Past: The Case of Postwar Japan.
Journal of Contemporary History, 38 (1), 101 - 116.
Shusterman, R. (2000). Performing Live. Aesthetic Alternatives for the Ends of Art.
Ithaca and London: Cornell University Press.
Silverman, H. J. (1994). Textualities. Between Hermeneutics and Deconstruction.
New York and London: Routledge.
Simsic, W. (1988). The Landscape and Spirituality. Spiritual Life, 34(1, Spring), 34 -
37.
Sinha, G. (Ed.). (1996). Expressions & Evocations. Contemporary Women Artists of
India. Mumbai: Marg Publications.
234

Slattery, L. (2002, October 16, 2002). Regrowth on Fertile Ground of Antiquity. The
Australian, p. 39.
Smith, G. (2003). Sidney Nolan. Desert and Drought. Melbourne: National Gallery
of Victoria.
Smith, P. (1974). New Directions in Bookbinding. London: Studio Vista.
Smith, P. (Ed.). (1995). The Enigmatic Body. Essays on the Arts by Jean Louis
Schefer. Cambridge, New York, Melbourne.
Smith, S. (2001). Landscape as Metaphor. Contemporary Paintings by Australian
Artists. Townsville: Perc Tucker Regional Gallery.
Sojka, N. (1999). Terry Winter Prints 1982 - 1998. A Catalogue Raisonne. New
York: The Detroit Institute of Arts. Hudson Hills Press.
Sokolowski, R. (Ed.). (1974). Husserlian Meditations. How Words Present Things.
Evanston: Northwestern University Press.
Speck, C. (1994). Women's War. Artlink, 14(4, Summer), 32 - 35.
Spurling, F. (2003). Moments. "Spirituality and Psycho-Therapy". Retrieved
7/05/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.abc.net.au/rn/relig/enc/stories/s837662.htm.
Stanton, M. (1993). Painting the Nightmare. Modern Painters (Winter), 70 - 73.
Stebbins, T. E., & Cragg Ricci, J. S. (Eds.). (1988). A Book by Anselm Kiefer.
London: Thames and Hudson.
Stein, E. (2002). On the Problem of Empathy (W. Stein, Trans.). In D. Moran & T.
Mooney (Eds.), The Phenomenology Reader (pp. 231 - 241). London and New
York: Routledge.
Steinbeck, J. (1975). The Grapes of Wrath. London: Pan Books in association with
Heineman.
Steinberg, P. (2000). Speak You Also. A Survivor's Reckoning. Great Britain: Allen
Lane The Penguin Press.
Steiner, G. ((1958) 1969). Language and Silence. Essays 1958 - 1966. Penguin
Books.
Stewart, D., & Mickunas, A. (Eds.). (1990). Exploring Phenomenology. A Guide to
the Field and Its Literature. (Second ed.). Athens: Ohio University Press.
Storr, R. (1997). On the Edge. Contemporary Art from the Werner and Elaine
Dannheisser Collection. New York: The Museum of Modern Art, New York.
Harry N. Abrams,Inc.
Sullivan, G. (1994). Seeing Australia. Views of Artists and Art Writers. Annandale,
NSW: Piper Press.
235

Sullivan, G. (in press). Studio Art as Research Practice. In E. D. Eisner, M (Ed.),


Handbook of Research and Policy in the Field of Art Education. York,PA:
TechBooks.
Sullivan, M. (1988 -1989). Michel Foucault and the Truth of Madness. Review of
Existential Psychology and Psychiatry, xx1(1,2,3), 81- 96.
Sutton, P. (2002). Mandy Martin: The Power of Landscape. ABC Visual
Arts/Features. Retrieved 27/11/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.abc.net.au/arts/visual/stories/s649657.htm.
Sutton, P. (2002). Following Lorinda Grant: Innovation in Wool. ABC. Retrieved
25/11/2002, from the World Wide Web:
abc.net.au/arts/design/stories/s526628.htm.
Tatlow, D. (2000, 6th May). Ethiopia Digging Its Own Grave. The Weekend
Australian, p. 18.
Taylor, E. (1998). Up Front. Faces of Australia at War. Canberra: The Australian
War Memorial and the National Portrait Gallery.
Taylor, E., & Forrester, S. (1994). "Death's Artefact..." Recent Art and War'. Artlink,
14(4 Summer), 27 -31.
Taylor, M. C. (1992). Disfiguring Art, Architecture and Religion. Chicago:
University of Chicago Press.
Taylor, M. C. (1993). Nots. Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Taylor, M. C. (1995). Colloquim : Art, Religion and Architecture.University of
Sydney.
Temkin, A. (1993). Joseph Beuys: An Introduction to His Life and Work. In
A.Temkin and B. Rose (Eds.), Thinking Is Form. The Drawings of Joseph Beuys
(pp. 11 - 23): Thames and Hudson in association with Phadelphia Museum of Art
and the Museum of Modern Art, New York.
Temkin, A. & Rose, B. (1993). Thinking Is Form. The Drawings of Joseph Beuys.
New York: Thames and Hudson in association with Philadelphia Museum of Art,
The Museum of Modern Art, New York.
The Suter Te Aratoi o Whakatu. (1999). Fear and Beauty: New Zealand Art at the
End of the Millenium. Nelson, New Zealand
Timothy Lutheran Church. (2001). 'I Have Called You by Name'. Retrieved
4/12/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.timothylivonia.com/sermons/2001-01-07.html.
Tingey, N. (1990). Graphic Art of Kathe Kollwitz. Journal of Australian War
Memorial, 17(October), 51 - 52.
Tingey, N. (1991). Contemporary Visions of War. Art and Australia, 28(4, Winter),
504 -508.
236

Tingey, N. (1992). The Art Collection and the Vietnam War. Journal of the
Australian War Memorial, 21(October), 41 -42.
Tingey, N., & Rensch, E. (1992). Collection Notes. Works of Art Acquired on the
Gulf War. Journal of Australian War Memorial, 20(April), 46 - 48.
Torjusen, B. (1989). Words and Images of Edvard Munch. London: Thames and
Hudson Ltd.
Travers, D. R. (1998). AIDS Exhibition. An Exhibition of Material from the Monash
University Library Rare Books Collection 19 March - 17 May 1998. Retrieved
2/11/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.lib.monash.edu.au/exhibitions/aids/Xaidcat.html.
Turner, C. (2000). Transcending Time: The Enigma of Japanese Contemporary Art.
Artlink, 20(2), 38 - 41.
Tyler, L., & Walker, B. (Eds.). (1994). Hot Off the Press. Prints and Politics.
Albuquerque: University of New Mexico Press. Tamarind Institute.
Underwood, B. (1990). No Rights in the Matter: A Phenomenological Inquiry into
Grief for Someone Else's Child. Phenomenology + Pedagogy, 8, 259 - 268.
van Alphen, E. (1997). Caught by History. Holocaust Effects in Contemporary Art,
Literature, And Theory. Stanford, California: Stanford University Press.
van der Kolk, B. A., & van der Hart, O. (1995). The Intrusive Past: The Flexibility of
Memory and the Engraving of Trauma. In C. Caruth (Ed.), Trauma. Explorations
in Memory (pp. 158 - 182). Baltimore and London: The John Hopkins University
Press.
Van Manen, M. Human Science Research. Retrieved 13/03/2003, from the World
Wide Web: http://www.ualberta.ca/~vanmanen/EDSE611.htm.
Van Manen, M. Human Science Research Page:Research as Writing. Retrieved
13/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.ualberta.ca/~vanmanen/hswriting.htm.
Van Manen, M. Human Science Research Page: Methodology. Retrieved
13/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.ualberta.ca/~vanmanen/hermphen,htm.
Van Manen, M. On the Epistemology of Reflective Practice. Retrieved 13/03/2003,
from the World Wide Web: http://www.ualberta.ca/~vanmanen/epistpractice.htm.
Van Manen, M. (1984). `Doing' Phenomenological Research and Writing. An
Introduction Monograph No.7. Edmonton, Alberta: The Department of
Secondary Education. The University of Alberta.
Van Manen, M. (1990). Researching Lived Experience. Human Science for an Action
Sensitive Pedagogy. London, Ontario: State University of New York Press.
237

Van Manen, M. (1996). The Pedagogy of Recognition. Retrieved 13/03/2003, from


the World Wide Web: http://www.ualberta.ca/~vanmanen/hsrcogn.htm.
Van Manen, M. (1996). Phenomenological Pedagogy and the Question of Meaning.
Retrieved 13/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.ualberta.ca/~vanmanen/pedagogy.htm.
Van Manen, M. (1999). The Pathic Nature of Inquiry and Nursing. In I.Madjar &
J.A.Walton (Eds.), Nursing and the Experience of Illness. Phenomenology in
Practice (pp. 17 - 35). London and New York: Routledge.
Van Manen, M. (1999). The Practice of Practice. Retrieved 13/03/2003, from the
World Wide Web: http://www.ualberta.ca/~vanmanen/practice.htm.
Van Manen, M. (2000). Thought Piece: Challenges of Phenomenological Research.
Retrieved 19/03/2003, from the World Wide Web:
http://www.phenomenologyonline.com/articles/template.cfm?ID=419.
Van Schaik, L. (Ed.). (2003). The Practice of Practice: Research in the Medium of
Design. Melbourne: RMIT University Press.
van Tiggelen, J. (2002, February 9). Once Were Emus. Good Weekend, 14 - 18.
Vaucher, A. R. (1993). Muses from Chaos and Ash. New York: Grove Press.
Vella, R. (2000). Musical Environments. A Manual for Listening, Improvising and
Composing. Strawberry Hills: Currency Press Pty Limited.
Vella, R. (2003). Words and Music. Paper presented at the Post-graduate Conference.
Queensland University of Technology.
Von Dieter Schwarz, H. (Ed.). (1991). Agnes Martin. Writings. Schriften.: Cantz.
Von Furstenberg, A. (1998). The Edge of Awareness. In B. J. Mallet (Ed.), The Edge
of Awareness (pp. 31 - 33). Milano: Edizioni Charta.
Wajnryb, R. (2001). The Silence: How Tragedy Shapes Talk. Sydney: Allen &
Unwin.
Walker, B. (1994). An Interview with Eric Avery. In B. Walker (Ed.), Hot Off the
Press (pp. 71 - 85). Albuquerque: University of New Mexico Press, Tamarind
Institute.
Walker, D. (1997). "Conference with a Difference. My Very Own Tardis". In A.
McCulloch (Ed.), Double Dialogues:Conference with a Difference 1996: Deakin
University.
Wardhaugh, J., & Wilding, P. (1993). Towards an Explaination of the Corruption of
Care. Critical Social Policy. A Journal of socialist theory and practice in social
welfare., 13(1, Summer), 4 - 31.
Weintraub, S. (2001). Silent Night. The Remarkable Christmas Truce of 1914. Great
Britain: Simon & Schuster UK Ltd.
238

Weschler, L. (1982). Seeing Is Forgetting the Name of the Thing One Sees: A Life of
Contemporary Artist Robert Irwin. Berkeley, Calif.: University of California
Press.
Weschler, L. (1998). Looking at Landscape/Being in Landscape. September 15 -
October 24,1998. Venice,California: L.A.Louver.
Whitman, W. Specimen Days in America. New York, London: George Routledge &
Sons, Limited and E.P. Dutton & Co.
Wiesel, E. (1958, 1960). Night. London: Penguin Books.
Wiesenthal, S., with a symposium edited by, Harry James Cargas, & V.Fetterman, B.
(1976,1997,1998). The Sunflower. On the Possibilities and Limits of Forgiveness.
New York: Schocken Books.
Wilkins, L. Ivor Hele the Heroic Figure. Australian War Memorial.
Wilkins, L. (2 March - 2 April 2000). Rick Amor Official Artist in East Timor.
Canberra: Australian War Memorial.
Wilkins, L. (29 June - 23 July 2000). New Beginnings. Wendy Sharpe & East Timor.
Canberra: Australian War Memorial.
Wilkins, L. (1991). Stella Bowen. Australian War Artist. Art and Australia, 28(4,
Winter), 493 - 497.
Wilkins, L. (1994). Collection Notes. Art of George Gittoes: Artist in the Field.
Journal of Australian War Memorial, 24(April), 47.
Willett, J. (1980). Art of a Nasty Time. The New York Review of Books. Retrieved
17/09/2002,from the World Wide Web: www.nybooks.com/articles/article-
preview?article_id=7359.
Williams, J. A. (1995). Farming and Photography: A Sort of Diary. Artlink, 15(1), 58
-59.
Wilson, G. (c 1995). The Artists of Hill End. Art,Life and Landscape. Sydney: The
Art Gallery of New South Wales.
Wilson, J. P. (1989). Trauma, Transformation and Healing. An Integrative Approach
to Theory, Research, and Post-Traumatic Therapy. New York: Brunner/Mazel.
Wilson, R. (2000). A Big Ask. Interviews with Interviewers. New Holland Publishers,
Australia.
Wilton, J., & Eisenberg, J. (1993). Unpleasant Pictures by Foreign Named Artists.
Australian Responses to Emigre Artists. Art and Australia, 31(2, Summer), 504 -
510.
Wolseley, J. (2002). Bushfire Journal. Heat (Burnt Ground), 4,(new series,
Newcastle), 113 - 143.
Woodhams, L. & M. Bishop. (1995). The Arts in Health. 'Exploring the Role of the
Arts in Health'. Paper presented at The Arts in Health, Toowoomba.
239

Woolf, V. (1977). A Room of One's Own. St Albans: Triad.


Wright, S. (2003). Requiem: The Exhibition. The Australian Photo Journalist, 8(2),
32 - 47.
Wurm, C. (2002). Evidence and Existentialism in Addiction. Retrieved, 2003, from
the World Wide Web:
www.google.com.au/search?q=cache:6EGHz3YA83AJ:www.nceta.flinders.edu.
Wylie, C. (1998). Brice Marden. Work of the 1990's. Paintings, Drawings, and
Prints.: Dallas Art Museum in association with Distributed Art Publishers.
Wyschogrod, E., & McKenny, G. P. (Eds.). (2003). The Ethical. Oxford: Blackwell
Publishing.
Wyszogrod, M. (1999). A Brush with Death, an Artist in the Death Camps. Albany:
State University of New York Press.
Xingjain, G. (2002). Return to Painting (N. Benabid, Trans.). New York: Perennial.
Harper Collins.
Yallop, R. (2003, February 1- 2, 2003). Robert Owen, Artist. The Weekend
Australian, p. R.3.
Yamada, T. T. (1998). The Memoirs of an Old Japanese First Lieutenant. Japan:
Sun-Messe Co.,Ltd.
Yang, W. (1995). Patrick White. The Late Years. Sydney: Macmillan.
Yang, W. (1996). Sadness. Allen & Unwin.
Yang, W. (1998). Diaries: A Retrospective Exhibition. 25 Years of Social, Personal
and Landscape Photography (Vol. 26 January - 26 April 1998). State Library of
New South Wales.
Yardley, A. with K. Langley. (1994). Unfolding. The Story of the Australian and
New Zealand AIDS Quilt Projects. Melbourne: McPhee Gribble.
Yardley, B. (1999). The Burial Party.Unpublished manuscript, Brisbane.
Yimbak, A. HIV/AIDS Cases up in PNG. Retrieved 28/11/2003, from the World
Wide Web:
http://www.fijiwomen.com.newsletters/regional/archives/2003/vol_8_issue_3/hiv.
html.
Young, J. E. (1995). Memory and Counter Memory. Towards a Social Aesthetic of
Holocaust Memorials. In M. Bohm-Duchen (Ed.), After Auschwitz. Responses to
the Holocaust in Contemporary Art (pp. 78 -102). Sunderland, London: Northern
Centre for Contemporary Art in conjunction with Lund Humphries.
Yunus, M. (1998). Banker to the Poor. The Autobiography of Muhammad Yunus,
Founder of the Grameen Bank (with. A. Jolis, Trans.). London: Aurum Press.
240

Zournazi, M. (2002, 15 November ). Variations on the Theme of Hope. Pluto Press


Australia. Retrieved 25/11/2002, from the World Wide Web:
www.plutoaustralia.com/news/1037330365_17366.php.
Zuber-Skerritt, O. (Ed.). (1996). Framework for Postgraduate Education. Lismore:
Southern Cross University.
Zuber-Skerritt, O., & Ryan, Y. (Eds.). (1994). Quality in Postgraduate Education.
London: Kogan Page.
Zucker, S. (2001). Confrontations with Radical Evil: The Ambiguity of Myth and the
Inadequacy of Representation. Art History, 24(3), 379 -400.
Zuss, M. (1999). Subject Present. Life-Writing and Strategies of Representation.
New York: Peter Lang.

Das könnte Ihnen auch gefallen